The Saga of Grettir
the Strong
Grettis saga Ásmundarsonar
CHAPTER I
THE FAMILY AND EARLY WARS
OF ONUND THE SON OF OFEIG
There was a man named
Onund, the son of Ofeig Clumsyfoot, who was the son of Ivar Horsetail. Onund
was the brother of Gudbjorg, the mother of Gudbrand Knob, the father of Asta,
the mother of King Olaf the Saint. His mother came from the Upplands,
while his father's relations were mostly in Rogaland and Hordland. He was a
great viking and used to harry away in the West over the sea. He was
accompanied on these expeditions by one Balki, the son of Blaeing from Sotanes,
and by Orm the Wealthy. Another comrade of theirs was named Hallvard. They had
five ships, all well equipped. They plundered the Hebrides, reaching the Barra
Isles, where there ruled a king named Kjarval, who also had five ships. These
they attacked; there was a fierce battle between them, in which Onund's men
fought with the utmost bravery. After many had fallen on both sides, the battle
ended with the king taking to flight with a single ship; the rest were captured
by Onund's force, along with much booty. They stayed there for the winter, and
spent the succeeding three summers harrying the coasts of Ireland and Scotland,
after which they returned to Norway.
CHAPTER II
THE BATTLE OF HAFRSFJORD
At that time Norway was very disturbed. Harald Shockhead, the son of Halfdan
the Black, till then king of the Upplands, was aiming at the supreme kingship. He
went into the North and fought many battles there, in which he was always
victorious. Then he marched harrying through the territories to the South,
bringing them into subjection wherever he came. On reaching Hordland he was
opposed by a motley multitude led by Kjotvi the Wealthy, Thorir Long-chin, and
Soti and King Sulki from South Rogaland. Geirmund Swarthyskin was then away in
the West, beyond the sea, so he was not present at the battle, although
Hordland belonged to his dominion.
Onund and his party had arrived that autumn from the western seas, and when
Thorir and Kjotvi heard of their landing they sent envoys to ask for their aid,
promising to treat them with honour. They were very anxious for an opportunity
of distinguishing themselves, so they joined Thorir's forces, and declared that
they would be in the thickest part of the battle. They met King Harald in a
fjord in Rogaland called Hafrsfjord. The forces on each side were very large,
and the battle was one of the greatest ever fought in Norway. There are many
accounts of it, for one always hears much about those people of whom the saga
is told. Troops had come in from all the country around and from other
countries as well, besides a multitude of vikings. Onund brought his ship
alongside of that of Thorir Long-chin in the very middle of the battle. King
Harald made for Thorir's ship, knowing him to be a terrible berserk, and very
brave. The fighting was desperate on either side. Then the king ordered his
berserks, the men called Wolfskins, forward. No iron could hurt them, and when
they charged nothing could withstand them. Thorir defended himself bravely and
fell on his ship fighting valiantly. The whole ship from stem to stern was
cleared and her fastenings were cut, so that she fell out of the line of
battle. Then they attacked Onund's ship, in the forepart of which he was
standing and fighting manfully. The king's men said: "He bears himself
well in the forecastle. Let us give him something to remind him of having been
in the battle." Onund was stepping out with one foot on to the bulwark,
and as he was striking they made a thrust at him with a spear; in parrying it
he bent backwards, and at that moment a man on the forecastle of the king's
ship struck him and took off his leg below the knee, disabling him at a blow.
With him fell the greater number of his men. They carried him to a ship
belonging to a man named Thrand, a son of Bjorn and brother of Eyvind the
Easterner. He was fighting against King Harald, and his ship was lying on the
other side of Onund's. Then there was a general flight. Thrand and the rest of
the vikings escaped any way they could, and sailed away westwards. They took
with them Onund and Balki and Hallvard Sugandi. Onund recovered and went about
for the rest of his life with a wooden leg, wherefore he was called Onund
Treefoot as long as he lived.
CHAPTER III
MEETING OF DEFEATED CHIEFS IN THE WEST AND MARRIAGE OF ONUND
There were then in the western parts many distinguished men who had fled
from their homes in Norway before King Harald, for he declared all who fought
against him outlaws, and seized their property. As soon as Onund had recovered
from his wound, Thrand went with his party to Geirmund Swarthyskin, who was the
most eminent of the vikings in the West. They asked him whether he was not
going to try and regain his kingdom in Hordland, and offered to join him,
hoping by this means to do something for their own properties, for Onund was
very wealthy and his kindred very powerful. Geirmund answered that Harald had
such a force that there was little hope of gaining any honour by fighting when
the whole country had joined against him and been beaten. He had no mind, he
said, to become the king's thrall, and to beg for that which he had once
possessed in his own right. Seeing that he was no longer in the vigour of his
youth he preferred to find some other occupation. So Onund and his party
returned to the Southern Islands, where they met many of their friends.
There was a man named Ofeig, nicknamed Grettir. He was the son of Einar, the
son of Olvir the Babyman. He was a brother of Oleif the Broad, the father of
Thormod Shaft. Another son of Olvir was named Steinolf, the father of Una, whom
Thorbjorn the Salmon-man married. A third son of Olvir was Steinmod, who was
the father of Konal, the father of Alfdis of the Barra Isles. Konal's son was
named Steimnod; he was the father of Halldora, whom Eilif, the son of Ketil the
One-handed, married.
Ofeig Grettir married Asny, the daughter of Vestar, the son of Haeing. His
sons were Asmund the Beardless and Asbjorn, and his daughters were named Aldis,
Aesa, and Asvor. Ofeig had fled from the wrath of King Harald into the West
over the sea, along with his kinsman Thormod Shaft and all their families. They
ravaged far and wide in the western seas. Thrand and Onund Treefoot were going
West to Ireland to join Thrand's brother, Eyvind the Easterner, who had command
of the Irish defences. Eyvind's mother was named Hlif; she was the daughter of
Hrolf, the son of Ingjald, the son of King Frodi, while Thrand's mother was
Helga, the daughter of Ondott Crow. The father of Eyvind and Thrand was Bjorn,
the son of Hrolf of Ar. He had had to leave Gautland because he had burnt in
his house Sigfast the father-in-law of King Solvi. Then he went to Norway and
spent the winter with Grim the Hersir, a son of Kolbjorn the Sneak, who wanted
to murder him for his money. Thence Bjorn went to Ondott Crow, who lived in
Hvinisfjord in Agdir. There he was well received, stayed the winter, and went
campaigning with Ondott in the summer until his wife Hlif died. Eventually
Ondott gave Bjorn his daughter Helga, and Bjorn then no longer went out to
fight. Eyvind had taken over his father's ships and become a great chief in the
western parts. He married Rafarta, the daughter of the Irish king Kjarval.
Their sons were Helgi the Lean and Snaebjorn.
When Thrand and Onund came to the Southern Islands they found there Ofeig
Grettir and Thormod Shaft, with whom they became very friendly, for each
thought the others had risen from the dead, their last meeting having been in
Norway when the war was at its worst. Onund was very silent, and Thrand, when
he noticed it, asked what was on his mind. Onund answered with a verse:
"No joy is mine since in battle I fought.
Many the sorrows that o'er me lower.
Men hold me for nought; this thought is the worst
of all that oppresses my sorrowing heart."
Thrand said: "Why, you still seem as full of vigour as ever you were.
You may yet settle down and marry. You shall have my good word and my interest
if you will only tell me whom you fancy."
Onund said he behaved nobly; but said there had once been a time when his
chances of making a profitable marriage had been better.
Thrand said: "Ofeig has a daughter named Aesa; we might mention it if
you like."
Onund said he would like it, and soon afterwards Ofeig was approached on the
subject. He received the proposal favourably, saying he knew the man to be of
good lineage and to have some wealth in movable property, though his lands were
not worth much. "But," he said, "I do not think he is very wise.
Why, my daughter is quite a child."
Thrand said that Onund was more vigorous than many a man whose legs were
sounder.
So with the aid of Thrand the terms were settled. Ofeig was to give his
daughter a portion in cash, for neither would reckon anything for his lands in
Norway. Soon afterwards Thrand was betrothed to the daughter of Thormod Shaft.
Both the maids were to remain plighted for three years.
Then they went on fighting expeditions in the summer, remaining in the Barra
Isles during the winter.
CHAPTER VI
FIGHT WITH VIKINGS VIGBJOD AND VESTMAR
There were two Vikings from the Southern Isles, named Vigbjod and Vestmar;
they were abroad both summer and winter. They had eight ships, and harried
mostly round the coast of Ireland, where they did many an evil deed until
Eyvind undertook the defence of the coast, when they retired to the Hebrides to
harry there, and right in to the Scotch firths. Thrand and Onund went out
against them and learned that they had sailed to an island called Bot. Onund
and Thrand followed them thither with five ships, and when the vikings sighted
them and saw how many there were, they thought their own force was sufficient,
so they took to their arms and advanced to the attack. Onund ordered his ships
to take up a position between two rocks where there was a deep but narrow
channel, open to attack from one side only, and by not more than five ships at
once. Onund was a very wily man. He sent his five ships forward into the
channel so that, as there was plenty of sea room behind them, they could easily
retire by merely backing their oars. One ship he brought under an island lying
on their beam, and carried a great stone to a place on the front of the rock
where it could not be seen from the enemy's ships. The Vikings came boldly on,
thinking they had caught them in a trap. Vigbjod asked who they were that he
had hemmed in. Thrand answered that he was a brother of Eyvind the Easterner,
and the man with him was his comrade, Onund Treefoot. The vikings laughed and
said:
"Trolls take the rascal Treefoot
and lay him even with the ground.
Never yet did I see men go to battle who could not carry themselves."
Onund said that could not be known until it was tried. Then the ships came
together. There was a great battle in which both sides fought bravely. When the
battle was thick Onund ordered his ships to back their oars. The vikings seeing
it thought they were taking to flight, and pushed on with all their might,
coming under the rock just at the moment when the party which had been
dispatched for that purpose arrived. They launched upon the vikings stones so
huge that nothing could hold against them. A number of the vikings were killed,
and others were so injured that they could fight no more. Then the vikings
tried to escape, but could not, as their ships were in the narrowest part of
the channel and were impeded both by the current and by the enemy's ships.
Onund's men vigorously attacked the wing commanded by Vigbjod while Thrand
engaged Vestmar, but effected little. When the men on Vigbjod's ship had been
somewhat reduced, Onund's men, he himself with them, prepared to board her. On
seeing that, Vigbjod spurred on his men resolutely. He turned against Onund,
most of whose men gave way. Onund was a man of immense strength and he bade his
followers observe how it fared with them. They shoved a log under the stump of
his leg, so that he stood pretty firm. The viking dashed forward, reached Onund
and hewed at him with his sword, which cut right through his shield and into
the log beneath his leg, where it remained fixed. As Vigbjod bent down to pull
his sword clear again, Onund dealt him a blow on his shoulder, severing his arm
and disabling him. When Vestmar saw his comrade fall, he sprang on to the
outermost ship and escaped along with all who could get on to her. Then they
examined the dead. Vigbjod had already expired. Onund went up to him and said:
"Bloody thy wounds. Didst thou see me flee?
'One-leg' no hurt received from thee.
Braver are many in word than in deed.
Thou, slave, didst fail when it came to the trial."
They took a large quantity of booty and returned to the Barra Isles in the
autumn.
CHAPTER V
VISIT OF ONUND AND THRAND TO EYVIND IN IRELAND
The following summer they made ready for a voyage to the West, to Ireland.
At the same time Balki and Hallvard sailed westwards, to Iceland, where they
had heard that good land was available for occupation. Balki took up some land
at Hrutafjord, and had his abode in two places called Balkastad. Hallvard
occupied Sugandafjord and Skalavik as far as Stigi, where he lived.
Thrand and Onund went to visit Eyvind the Easterner, who welcomed joyfully
his brother Thrand; but when he heard that Onund had also come, he became very
angry and wanted to fight him. Thrand asked him not to do so, and said it would
ill become him to quarrel with men from Norway, especially with such as had
given no offence. Eyvind said that he had given offence before, when he made
war on Kjarval the king, and that he should now pay for it. The brothers had
much to say to each other about the matter, till at last Thrand said that he
and Onund should share their fortune together. Then Eyvind allowed himself to
be appeased. They stayed there a long time in the summer and went with Eyvind
on his expeditions. Eyvind found Onund to be a man of the greatest valour. In
the autumn they went to the Hebrides, and Eyvind made over to Thrand all his
share in their father Bjorn's patrimony in the event of Bjorn dying before
Thrand. They stayed in the Hebrides until they married and some years after.
CHAPTER VI
DEATH OF BJORN; DISPUTES OVER HIS PROPERTY IN NORWAY
The next thing that happened was the death of Thrand's father Bjorn. When
the news of it reached Grim the Hersir he proceeded against Ondott Crow and
claimed Bjorn's estate. Ondott held Thrand to be the rightful heir of his
father, but Grim contended that Thrand was away in the West. Bjorn, he said,
came from Gautland, and the succession to the estate of all foreigners passed
to the king. Ondott said that he would hold the property on behalf of Thrand,
who was his daughter's son. Grim then departed, having effected nothing by his
claim.
Thrand, when he heard of his father's death, prepared to leave the Hebrides,
and Onund Treefoot decided to go with him. Ofeig Grettir and Thormod Shaft went
to Iceland with all their belongings, landing at Eyrar in the South. They spent
the first winter with Thorbjorn the Salmon-man, and then occupied
Gnupverjahrepp. Ofeig took the outer part lying between the rivers Thvera and
Kalfa, and lived at Ofeigsstad near Steinsholt, while Thormod took the eastern
part, living at Skaptaholt. Thormod's daughters were named Thorvor and Thorve;
the former afterwards became the mother of Thorodd the Godi at Hjalli, Thorve
of Thorstein the Godi the father of Bjarni the Wise.
We now return to Thrand and Onund, who sailed back from the West to Norway.
A strong wind blew in their favour, so that they arrived at the house of Ondott
Crow before any one knew of their journey. He welcomed Thrand and told him of
the claim which Grim the Hersir had raised for Bjorn's estate.
"To my thinking, kinsman," he said, "it is better that the
property should go to you than to the king's thralls. It is a fortunate thing
for you that no one knows of your having come here, for I expect that Grim will
make an attack upon one or the other of us if he can. I should prefer if you
would take over your property and stay in other countries."
Thrand said that he would do so. He took over the property and prepared to
leave Norway. Before leaving he asked Onund Treefoot whether he would not come
to Iceland. Onund said he wanted first to visit some of his relations and
friends in the South.
"Then," said Thrand, "we must part. I should be glad if you
would give my kinsmen your support, for our enemies will certainly try to take
revenge upon them when I am gone. I am going to Iceland, and I want you to come
there too."
Onund said he would come, and they parted with great friendship. Thrand went
to Iceland, where he met with a welcome from Ofeig and Thormod Shaft. He took
up his dwelling at Thrandarholt to the west of Thjorsa.
CHAPTER VII
MURDER OF ONDOTT CROW, AND THE VENGEANCE THEREFOR
Onund went to Rogaland in the South and visited many of his relations and
friends. He lived there in concealment with a man named Kolbeinn. He there
learned that King Harald had taken all his property and given it into the
charge of a man named Harekr, one of his officials. Onund went by night to Harekr's
house and caught him at home; he was led to execution. Then Onund took
possession of all the loose property which he found and burnt the building.
That autumn Grim the Hersir murdered Ondott Crow because he had not
succeeded in getting the property for the king. Ondott's wife Signy carried off
all their loose property that same night to a ship and escaped with her sons
Asmund and Asgrim to her father Sighvat. A little later she sent her sons to
Hedin, her fosterfather in Soknadal, where they remained for a time and then
wanted to return to their mother. They left at last, and at Yule-tide came to
Ingjald the Trusty at Hvin. His wife Gyda persuaded him to take them in, and
they spent the winter there. In the spring Onund came to northern Agdir, having
learned of the murder of Ondott. He met Signy and asked her what assistance
they would have of him. She said they were most anxious to punish Grim for the
death of Ondott. So the sons were sent for, and when they met Onund Treefoot
they all joined together and had Grim's doings closely watched.
In the summer there was a beer-brewing at Grim's for a jarl named Audun,
whom he had invited. When Onund and the sons of Ondott heard of it, they
appeared at his house unexpectedly and set fire to it. Grim the Hersir and
about thirty men were burnt in the house. They captured a quantity of
valuables. Then Onund went into the forest, while the two brothers took the
boat of their fosterfather Ingjald, rowed away and lay in hiding a little way
off. Soon jarl Audun appeared, on his way to the feast, as had been arranged,
but on arriving he missed his host. So he collected his men around him and
stayed there a few nights, quite unaware of Onund and his companions. He slept
in a loft with two other men. Onund knew everything that was going on in the
house and sent for the two brothers to come to him. On their arrival he asked
them whether they preferred to keep watch on the house or to attack the jarl.
They chose to attack. They then battered the entrance of the loft with beams
until the door gave way. Asmund seized the two men who were with the jarl and
threw them to the ground with such violence that they were wellnigh killed.
Asgrim rushed at the jarl and demanded of him weregild for his father, for he
had been in league with Grim and took part in the attack when Ondott was
murdered. The jarl said he had no money about him and asked for time. Asgrim
then placed the point of his spear against his breast and ordered him to pay up
on the spot. Then the jarl took a necklace from his neck and gave it to him
with three gold rings and a velvet mantle. Asgrim took the things and bestowed
a name upon the jarl. He called him Audun Nannygoat.
When the farmers and people about heard of the disturbances they all came
out to help the jar]. Onund had a large force with him, and there was a great
battle in which many a good farmer and many a follower of the jarl were slain.
The brothers returned to Onund and reported what had occurred with the jarl.
Onund said it was a pity they had not killed him. It would, he said, have been
something to make up for the losses which he had suffered from King Harald.
They said the disgrace was far worse for the jarl as it was, and they went off
to Surnadal to Eirik Beery, a Landman there, who took them all in for the
winter. At Yule-tide they had a great drinking bout with a man named
Hallsteinn, nicknamed Stallion. Eirik opened the feast and entertained them
generously. Then it was Hallsteinn's turn, and they began to quarrel.
Hallsteinn struck Eirik with a deer's horn, for which Eirik got no revenge, but
had to go home with it, to the great annoyance of Ondott's sons. A little later
Asgrim went to Hallsteinn's house and gave him a severe wound. All the people
who were present started up and attacked Asgrim. He defended himself vigorously
and escaped in the dark, leaving them under the belief that they had killed
him. Onund and Asmund, on hearing that Asgrim had been killed, were at a loss
what they could do in the matter. Eirik's advice was that they should betake
themselves to Iceland, for it would never do for them to remain in the land
where the king could get at them. This they determined to do. Each of them had
his own ship and they made ready for the voyage to Iceland. Hallsteinn was laid
low with his wound and died before Onund sailed with his party. Kolbeinn, the
man who was mentioned before, went in the ship with Onund.
CHAPTER VIII
ONUND AND ASMUND SAIL TO ICELAND
Onund and Asmund set sail directly when they were ready and their ships kept
together. Onund said:
"Hallvard and I were aforetime deemed
worthy in storm of swords to bear us.
With one foot now I step on the ship
towards Iceland. The poet's day is o'er."
They had a rough passage with cross winds, mostly from the south, so that
they drifted away to the north. They made Iceland right in the North, at
Langanes, where they regained their reckonings. The ships were near enough to
each other for them to speak together. Asmund said they had better make for
Eyjafjord, and this was agreed to. They kept under the land and heavy weather
set in from the south-east. Just as Onund was tacking, the yard was carried
away; they lowered the sail and were driven out to sea. Asmund got under the
lee of Hrisey, where he waited until a fair wind set in which took him up to
Eyjafjord. Helgi the Lean gave him the whole of Kraeklingahlid, and he lived at
South- Glera. A few years later his brother Asgrim came to Iceland and took up
his residence at North-Glera. His son was Ellidagrim the father of Asgrim.
CHAPTER IX
ONUND SETTLES IN KALDBAK
Onund Treefoot was driven away from the shore for several days, after which
the wind shifted and blew towards the land. Then they made land again, which
those of them who had been there before recognised as the western coast of the
Skagi peninsula. They sailed in to Strandafloi, almost to Sudrstrandir. There
came rowing towards them a ten-oared boat with six men on board, who hailed the
sea-going ship and asked who was their captain. Onund told them his name and
asked whence they came. They said they were the men of Thorvald from Drangar.
Then Onund asked whether all the land round that coast was occupied; they
answered there was very little left at Sudrstrandir and none at all in the
North. So Onund asked his men whether they would seek some land further to the
West or take that of which they had just been told. They said they would first
explore a little further. They sailed in along the coast of the bay and
anchored off a creek near Arnes, where they put off in a boat to the shore.
Here dwelt a wealthy man named Eirik Snare, who had taken the land between
Ingolfsfjord and Ofaera in Veidileysa. On hearing that Onund had arrived in
those parts, he offered to let him have such portion as he needed from his own
lands, adding that there was little land which had not already been taken up.
Onund said he would first like to see what there was.
Then they went further into the bay past some fjords and came to Ofaera,
where Eirik said: "Here is what there is to see. From here down to the
lands of Bjorn is unoccupied." A high range of mountains, on which snow
had fallen, rose from beside the river. Onund looked at the mountains and spoke
a verse:
"My lands and my might have drifted away
as drifts the ship on the ocean.
My friends and my home I have left behind me,
and bartered my acres for Kaldbak."
"Many a man," answered Eirik, "has lost so much in Norway
that it may not be mended. I expect too that nearly all the lands in the main
districts have been taken, so that I will not urge you to leave these parts and
seek elsewhere. I will keep to my word and let you have whatever lands of my
own you may require."
Onund said he would take advantage of his offer, and in the end he took some
of the Ofaera land and the three creeks Byrgisvik, Kolbeinsvik, and Kaldbaksvik
as far as Kaldbak's Cliff. Afterwards Eirik gave him Veidileysa with
Reykjarfjord and the outer part of Reykjanes on that side. Nothing was settled
about the drift which came to the coast, because there was so much of it that
every one could have what he wanted. Onund made his home in Kaldbak and had a
large household. His property increased and he had another house in
Reykjarfjord. Kolbeinn lived in Kolbeinsvik and for some years Onund lived
quietly at home.
CHAPTER X
OFEIG GRETTIR IS KILLED. VISIT OF ONUND TO AUD THE DEEP-MINDED
Onund was a man of such valour that few, even of those whose limbs were
sound, could measure themselves against him. His name, too, was renowned
throughout the whole country on account of his ancestry. It happened that a
dispute arose between Ofeig Grettir and one Thorbjornm called Jarlakappi, which
ended in Ofeig being killed by Thorbjorn in Grettisgeil near Haell. The feud
was taken up by Ofeig's sons who assembled a large force of men. Onund Treefoot
was sent for, and in the spring he rode South to Hvamm, where he stayed with
Aud the Deep-Minded. He had been with her over the sea in the West, and she
received him with welcome. Her grandson, Olaf Feilan, was then grown up, and
Aud was very infirm. She consulted Onund concerning her kinsman Olaf, for whom
she wished to ask in marriage Alfdis of the Barra Isles, the cousin of Onund's
wife Aesa. Onund thought it a very suitable match, and Olaf rode with him to
the South. Then Onund met friends and kinsmen, who made him their guest. The
matter of the dispute was talked over between them, and finally laid before the
Kjalarnes Thing, for the All-Thing had not yet been established. Eventually it
was settled by arbitration and heavy weregilds were imposed for the murder.
Thorbjorn Jarlakappi was exiled. His son was Solmund, the father of Svidukari.
These kinsmen were long abroad after that. Thrand invited Onund and Olaf with
his party to stay with him, as did Thormod Shaft. The matter of Olaf's marriage
was then pressed, and an agreement easily arrived at, for Aud's rank and
influence were well known to them. The settlement was arranged and Onund's
party rode home again. Aud thanked him for his aid in behalf of Olaf, who
married Alfdis of the Barra Isles that autumn. Then Aud the Deep-Minded died,
as is told in the Laxdaela Saga.
CHAPTER XI
DEATH OF ONUND. DISPUTES BETWEEN THE SONS OF ONUND AND OF EIRIK
Onund and Aesa had two sons; the elder was named Thorgeir, the younger Ofeig
Grettir. Soon afterwards Aesa died and Onund married a second wife, Thordis
Thorgrim's daughter of Gnup in Midfjord, a kinsman of Skeggi of Midfjord. By
her Onund had a son named Thorgrim, who grew up quickly to manhood, ta11 and
strong, wise and a good manager. Onund continued to live at Kaldbak until his
old age. He died a natural death and lies in Treefoot's howe. He was the
boldest and most active one-legged man that ever came to Iceland.
Among Onund's sons Thorgrim was the foremost, although the others were
older. When he was twenty-five years old his hair was grey, whence they
nick-named him Greyhead. His mother Thordis married again, taking as her second
husband Audun Skokull. They had a son named Asgeir of Asgeirsa. Thorgrim
Greyhead and his brothers had a large property, which they managed together
without dividing it up.
Eirik lived, as was mentioned, at Arnes. He had married Alof, the daughter
of Ingolf of Ingolfsfjord, by whom he had a son named Flosi, a very promising
young man with many friends.
There came to that part of Iceland three brothers, named Ingolf, Ofeig, and
Eyvind, and took the three fjords which are called by their names, where they
lived. Eyvind had a son named Olaf. He at first lived at Eyvindsfjord, but went
later to Drangar. He was a most capable man.
So long as their fathers were living no disputes arose among these men; but
when Eirik was dead it occurred to Flosi that those of Kaldbak had no legal
title to the lands which Eirik had given to Onund. Out of this serious dissensions
arose between them. Thorgrim and his brothers continued in possession of the
lands as before, but they would not join in games together. Thorgeir, the
eldest brother, was managing the farm at Reykjarfjord, and often rowed out
fishing, as the fjords were full of fish. The men of Vik now laid their plans.
Flosi had a man in Arnes named Thorfinn, and sent him to fetch Thorgeir's head.
This man hid himself in the boatshed. One morning when Thorgeir was preparing
to row out with two other men, one of whom was named Brand, Thorgeir was
walking ahead with a leather skin on his back containing some drink. It was
very dark, and as he passed the boat-house Thorfinn sprang out upon him and
dealt him a blow with an axe between his shoulders. The axe went into something
and made a squeaking noise. Thorfinn let go his axe, feeling quite sure that no
bandages would be needed, and being very anxious to escape as fast as he could.
He ran North, and reaching Arnes before the day had quite broken, said that he
had killed Thorgeir and that Flosi must protect him. The only thing to be done
was to offer some compensation in money. "That," he said, "will
be the best thing for us after such a terrible piece of work."
Flosi said he must first learn more about it, and that he thought Thorfinn
seemed very frightened after his doughty deed.
We must now tell what had happened to Thorgeir. He turned round when he was
struck, but the blow had gone into the leather bottle, and he was unhurt. They
could make no search for the man because it was dark, so they rowed on down the
fjord to Kaldbak, where they told what had happened. People made great game of
the affair and called him Thorgeir Bottleback, a name which stuck to him ever
after. A verse was made:
"In days gone by men bathed their blades
in the streaming gore of a foeman's wound.
But now a wretch of all honour bereft
reddens his dastard axe in whey."
CHAPTER XII
BATTLE AT RIFSKER
At that time there came over Iceland a famine the like of which had never
been seen before. Nearly all the fisheries failed, and also the drift wood. So
it continued for many years.
One autumn some traders in a sea-going ship, who had been driven out of
their course, were wrecked at Vik. Flosi took in four or five of them with
their captain, named Steinn. They all found shelter in the neighbourhood of Vik
and tried to rig up a ship out of the wreckage, but were not very successful.
The ship was too narrow in the bow and stern and too broad amidships. In the
spring a northerly gale set in which lasted nearly a week, after which men
began to look for drift.
There was a man living in Reykjanes named Thorsteinn. He found a whale
stranded on the south side of the promontory at the place now called Rifsker.
It was a large rorqual, and he at once sent word by a messenger to Flosi in Vik
and to the nearest farms.
At Gjogr lived a man named Einar, a tenant of the Kaldbak men whom they
employed to look after the drift on that side of the fjord. He got to know of
the whale having been stranded and at once rowed across the fjord in his boat
to Byrgisvik, whence he sent a messenger to Kaldbak. When Thorgrim and his
brother heard the news they got ready to go with all speed to the spot. There
were twelve of them in a ten-oared boat, and six others, with Ivar and Leif,
sons of Kolbeinn. All the farmers who could get away went to the whale.
In the meantime Flosi had sent word to his kinsmen in the North at
Ingolfsfjord and Ofeigsfjord and to Olaf the son of Eyvind who lived at
Drangar. The first to arrive were Flosi and the men of Vik, who at once began
to cut up the whale, carrying on shore the flesh as it was cut. At first there
were about twenty men, but more came thronging in. Then there came the men of
Kaldbak with four ships. Thorgrim laid claim to the whale and forbade the men
of Vik to cut, distribute, or carry away any portion of it. Flosi called upon
him to show proof that Eirik had in express words given over the drift to
Onund; if not, he said he would prevent them by force. Thorgrim saw that he was
outnumbered and would not venture on fighting. Then there came a ship across
the fjords, the men rowing with all their might. They came up; it was Svan of
Hol from Bjarnarfjord with his men, and he at once told Thorgrim not to let
himself be robbed. The two men had been great friends, and Svan offered
Thorgrim his aid, which the brothers accepted, and they attacked valiantly.
Thorgeir Bottleback was the first to get on to the whale where Flosi's men
were. Thorfinn, who was spoken of before, was cutting it up, standing near the
head on the place where he had been carving. "Here I bring you your
axe," said Thorgeir. Then he struck at Thorfinn's neck and cut off his
head. Flosi was up on the beach and saw it. He urged on his men to give it them
back. They fought for a long time and the Kaldbak people were getting the best
of it. Most of them had no weapons but the axes with which they were cutting up
the whale and short knives. The men of Vik were driven from the whale on to the
sandbanks. The men from the East, however, were armed and able to deal wounds.
Their captain Steinn cut off the leg of Kolbeinn's son Ivar, and Ivar's brother
Leif beat one of Steinn's men to death with a rib of the whale. Then they
fought with anything they could get, and men were slain on both sides. At last
Olaf came up with a number of ships from Drangar and joined Flosi; the men of
Kaldbak were then overpowered by numbers. They had already loaded their ships,
and Svan told them to get on board. They therefore retired towards the ships, the
men of Vik after them. Svan on reaching the sea struck at Steinn their captain,
wounding him badly, and then sprang into his own ship. Thorgrim gave Flosi a
severe wound and escaped. Olaf wounded Ofeig Grettir fatally, but Thorgeir
carried him off and sprang on to his ship with him. The Kaldbak men rowed into
the fjord and the two parties separated.
The following verse was composed on these doings:
"Hard were the blows which were dealt at Rifsker;
no weapons they had but steaks of the whale.
They belaboured each other with rotten blubber.
Unseemly methinks is such warfare for men."
After this they made peace, and the dispute was laid before the All-Thing.
On the side of the Kaldbak men were Thorodd the Godi, Skeggi of Midfjord, and
many others from the South. Flosi was exiled, along with several others who had
been with him. He was put to great expense, for he insisted upon paying all the
fines himself. Thorgrim and his brothers were unable to show that they had paid
any money either for the land or for the drift which Flosi claimed. The Lawman
was Thorkell Mani, and the question was referred to him. He declared that by
law something must have been paid, though not necessarily the full value.
"There was a case in point," he said, "between my grandfather
Ingolf and a woman named Steinvor the Old. He gave her the whole of
Rosmhvalanes and she gave him a dirty cloak for it; the transfer was afterwards
held to be valid. That was a much more important affair than this. My advice is
that the land be divided in equal portions between the two; and henceforward it
shall be legally established that all drift shall be the property of the owner
of the land upon which it has been stranded."
This was agreed to. Thorgrim and his brothers were to give up Reykjarfjord with
all on that side, and were to keep Kamb. For Ofeig a large sum of money was
paid, and Thorfinn was assessed at nothing at all; Thorgeir received
compensation for the attack made upon his life, and all the parties were
reconciled. Flosi went to Norway with Steinn the captain and sold his lands in
Vik to Geirmund Hvikatimbr, who lived there thenceforward.
The ship which Steinn's sailors had built was rather a tub. She was called
Trekyllir - Tree-sack. Flosi went on his journey in her, but was driven back to
Oxarfjord; out of this arose the saga of Bodmod the Champion and Grimolf.
CHAPTER XIII
THORGRIM SETTLES AT BJARG AND MARRIES. HIS SON ASMUND VISITS NORWAY AND
MARRIES TWICE
After these events Thorgrim and his brothers divided up the property between
them. Thorgrim took the movable property and Thorgeir the lands. Then Thorgrim
went inland to Midfjord and bought some land at Bjarg with the aid of Skeggi.
He married Thordis, the daughter of Asmund from Asmund's peak who had land in
Thingeyrasveit. They had a son named Asmund, a great man and strong, also wise,
and notable for his abundance of hair, which turned grey very early. He was
called Longhair.
Thorgrim occupied himself with the management of his estate and kept all the
men of his household hard at work. Asmund did not want to work, so that he and
his father got on rather badly together. This continued until Asmund was grown
up, when he asked his father to give him the means to go abroad. Thorgrim said
he should have little enough, but he gave him some ready cash. So Asmund went
away and soon increased his capital. He sailed to divers lands, became a great
trader and very wealthy. He was popular and enjoyed good credit, and had many
friends among the leading men of Norway.
One autumn Asmund was in the East on a visit to a certain magnate named
Thorsteinn. His family came from the Upplands, and he had a sister named
Rannveig who had excellent prospects. Asmund asked this girl in marriage and
obtained her through the interest of her brother Thorsteinn; he settled there
for a time and was highly thought of. He and Rannveig had a son named
Thorsteinn, who became a handsome man, strong, and with a powerful voice. He
was very tall and rather sluggish in his movements, wherefore he was nicknamed
Dromund. When young Thorsteinn was half grown up his mother fell ill and died,
and Asmund cared no more for Norway. Thorsteinn was taken over by his mother's
relations along with his property, while Asmund went on voyages and became
famous.
Asmund came in his ship to Hunavain, where Thorkell Krafla was chief of the
Vatnsdalers. On hearing of Asmund's arrival Thorkell went to the ship and
invited him to stay, and Asmund went to visit him in Marsstadir in Vatnsdal
where he lived. Thorkell was a son of Thorgrim, the Godi of Karnsa, and a man
of great experience. This was soon after the arrival of Bishop Fridrek and
Thorvald the son of Kodran, who were living at Laekjamot when these events
happened, preaching Christianity for the first time in the North of the island.
Thorkell and many of his men received the prima signatio. Many things might be
told of the dealings between the bishop's men and the Northerners, which,
however, do not belong to this saga.
There was a girl named Asdis who was being brought up in Thorkell's house.
She was a daughter of Bard the son of Jokull, the son of Ingimund the Old, the
son of Thorsteinn, the son of Ketil Raum. Her mother's name was Aldis, whom we
have already heard of as the daughter of Ofeig Grettir. Asdis was not betrothed
as yet, and was a most desirable match, both on account of her connections and
her wealth. Asmund now became sick of travelling about and wanted to settle
down in Iceland. So he spoke up and asked for Asdis as his wife. Thorkell knew
all about him and knew that he was a man of wealth, able to manage his affairs,
so the marriage was arranged. Asmund married Asdis, and became a close friend
of Thorkell. He was a great man of affairs, learned in the law and very
strenuous. Soon afterwards Thorgrim Greyhead died at Bjarg; Asmund succeeded to
his property and took up his residence at Bjarg.
CHAPTER XIV
ASMUND'S CHILDREN. GRETTIR'S CHILDH00D
Asmund Longhair now set up a large and sumptuous household in Bjarg, where
he maintained a numerous retinue and became very popular. His children were as
follows: The eldest was Atli, an able and accomplished man, tactful and easy to
deal with; he was much liked by all. His second son was called Grettir. He was
very hard to manage in his bringing up. He spoke little and was rough in his
manners and quarrelsome, both in words and deeds. He got little affection from
his father Asmund, but his mother loved him dearly. Grettir was a handsome man
in appearance, with a face rather broad and short, redhaired and somewhat
freckled; not very precocious in his youth. There was a daughter named Thordis,
who afterwards married Glum the son of Ospak, Kjallak's son from Skridinsenni.
Another daughter was named Rannveig; she married Gamli the son of Thorhall of
Vineland, and they dwelt at Melar in Hrutafjord and had a son named Grim. Glum
and Thordis had a son named Ospak who fell into a dispute with Odd the son of
Ofeig, which is told of in the "Saga of the Banded Men."
Grettir grew up at Bjarg until he was ten years old, when he began to
develop a little. Asmund told him that he must do some work. Grettir said that
would not suit him very well, but asked what he was to do.
"You must mind the geese," said Asmund.
"That is wretched work, only fit for an idiot," Grettir answered.
"You do that properly," his father said, "and we shall get on
better together."
So Grettir went to mind the geese. There were fifty of them, and a number of
goslings. Before long he began to find them troublesome, and the goslings would
not come on quickly enough. This put him out, for he could never control his
temper. Soon afterwards some wanderers found the goslings lying outside dead,
and the geese with their wings broken. This was in the autumn. Asmund was very
much annoyed and asked Grettir whether he had killed the birds. Grettir grinned
and answered:
"Always when winter is coming on
I like to wring the goslings' necks.
If among them there are geese
I treat the creatures all alike."
"You shan't twist any more of their necks," said Asmund.
"The friend aye warns his friend of ill," answered Grettir.
"I will give you other work to do."
"He knoweth most who most hath tried. But what am I to do now?"
Grettir asked.
"You shall rub my back when I am sitting by the fire, as I am in the
habit of having it done."
"Warm work for the hands." he answered. "It is only fit for
an idiot."
This for a time was Grettir's occupation. As the autumn advanced Asmund
wanted more warmth, and was constantly telling Grettir to rub his back hard. It
was the custom in those days for people to have large rooms with long fires in
them in their houses, where men sat by the fire in the evenings on benches,
sleeping afterwards at the side away from the fries. By day the women carded
their wool there.
One evening when Grettir had to scratch Asmund's back his father said to
him: "Now you will have to put aside your laziness, you good-for-nothing
you."
Grettir answered: "`Tis ill to rouse a hasty temper."
"You are fit for nothing at all," said Asmund.
Grettir saw some wood-combs lying on one of the benches; he took up one of
them and drew it along Asmund's back. Asmund sprang up and was going to thrash
him with his stick, but he escaped. His mother came up and asked what they were
fighting about. Grettir answered in a verse:
"Oh lady, the giver of treasure, I see,
has dire intent to burn my hands.
With nails uncut I was stroking his back.
Clearly I see the bird of wounds."
His mother was much vexed with Grettir for what he had done and said he
would not grow up very prudent. The affair did not improve the relations
between Asmund and his son.
Soon after this Asmund spoke to Grettir and told him to look after his
horses. Grettir said that would be better than back-fire-warming.
"You are to do what I tell you," said Asmund. "I have a dun
mare with a dark stripe down her back whom I call Keingala. She is very knowing
about the weather and about rain coming. When she refuses to graze it never
fails that a storm will follow. You are then to keep the horses under shelter
in the stables, and when cold weather sets in keep them to the north of the
ridge. I hope you will perform this duty better than the two which I gave you
before."
Grettir said: "That is cold work, and fit for a man to do; but it seems
to me rash to trust to the mare, when to my knowledge no one has done so
before."
So Grettir took to minding the horses, and went on until Yule- tide was
past, when very cold weather set in, with snow, so that grazing was difficult.
He was very badly provided with clothes and little hardened to the weather. He
began to feel it very cold, and Keingala always chose the windiest places
whatever the weather was. She never came to the meadow early enough to get home
before nightfall. Grettir then thought he would play a trick upon Keingala to
pay her out for her wanderings. One morning early he came to the stables,
opened the door and found Keingala standing in front of the manger. She had
taken the whole of the fodder which had been given to all the horses for
herself. Grettir jumped upon her back, with a sharp knife in his hand which he
drew across her shoulder and along her back on both sides. The horse was fat
and fresh; she shied back very frightened and kicked out till her hoofs rattled
against the walls. Grettir fell off, but picked himself up and tried to mount
her again. There was a sharp struggle, which ended in his shaving all the skin
on her back down to her flank. Then he drove the horses out to the meadow.
Keingala would not take a bite except off her back, and soon after noon she
bolted off to the stables. Grettir locked the door and went home. Asmund asked
him where the horses were; he said he had looked after them as usual. Asmund
said there must be a storm close at hand if the horses would not stay out in
such weather as there was then.
Grettir said: "Many seem wise who are lacking in wit."
The night passed and there was no storm. Grettir drove out the horses, but
Keingala could not endure the pasture. Asmund thought it very strange that no
change came in the weather. On the third morning he went himself to the horses
and on seeing Keingala he said: "III indeed have the horses fared in this
beautiful weather! Thy back will not deceive me, my Bleikala."
"The likely may happen - also the unlikely," said Grettir.
Asmund stroked the back of the horse and all her coat came off on his hand.
He could not understand how she had got into that state and thought Grettir
must have done it. Grettir grinned and said nothing. Asmund went home and
became very abusive. He heard his wife say: "My son's watching of the
horses must have prospered well."
Then he spoke a verse:
"He has cheated me sorely, and Keingala shorn.
'Tis the pride of a woman that urges her tongue.
Artful he holds my commands in derision.
Consider my verses, oh wife of my heart."
"I do not know," she said, "which seems to me the more
perverse, for you to make him work, or for him always to get out of it in the
same way."
"Now there shall be an end to it," said Asmund. "He must have
something worse than merely making good the damage."
"Let neither speak of it to the other," said Grettir, and so it
remained.
Asmund had Keingala killed. Many more childish pranks did Grettir play which
are not told in the saga. He now began to grow very big, but men did not
clearly know what strength he had because he had never been tried in wrestling.
He kept making verses and ditties which were always a little ironical. He did
not sleep in the common room and was generally very silent.
CHAPTER XV
GAMES AT MIDFJORDVATN
There were then a good many youths growing up in Midfjord. A certain
Skaldtorfa, whose home was in Torfustadir, had a son named Bersi, an
accomplished young man and a clever poet. Two brothers named Kormak and
Thorgils lived at Mel and had with them a youth named Odd, who was dependent
upon them, and was nicknamed Odd the Needy-Skald. Another was named Audun; he
grew up in Audunarstad in Vididal, a pleasant good-natured youth and the strongest
of his age in the North. Kalf the son of Asgeir and his brother Thorvald lived
at Asgeirsa. Grettir's brother Atli was then growing to a man; he was most
gracious in manners and universally liked.
These youths used to play at ball together at Midfjord Water. Those from
Midfjord and from Vididal used to meet there, and there came many from Vestrhop
and Vatnsnes with some from Hrutafjord. Those who came from afar used to lodge
there. Those who were about equal in the ballgame were matched together, and
generally they had much fun in the autumn. Grettir went to the sports when he
was fourteen years old at the request of his brother Atli. The parties were
made up. Grettir was matched against Audun, the youth already mentioned, who
was a few years the elder. Audun struck the ball over Grettir's head so that he
could not reach it, and it bounded far away over the ice. Grettir lost his
temper, thinking he had done it out of mischief, but he fetched the ball,
brought it back and going up to Audun drove it straight into his forehead, so
that the skin was broken. Audun then struck at Grettir with the bat that he was
holding, but Grettir ducked and the blow missed him. Then they seized each
other with their arms and wrestled. It was evident to the people around that
Grettir was stronger than they had supposed, for Audun was very strong indeed
of body. They struggled long together until at last Grettir was thrown. Audun
then set his knees on his stomach and dealt unmercifully with him. Atli and
Bersi and a number of the others ran up and separated them. Gretti said they
need not hold him like a mad dog, and added: "The thrall alone takes
instant vengeance, the coward never."
The rest had no mind to let the affair create discord among them, and the
brothers Kalf and Thorvald tried to reconcile them. Audun and Grettir were
distantly related to each other. The games went on and there was no further
disturbance.
CHAPTER XVI
GRETTIR KILLS SKEGGI AND IS OUTLAWED FOR THREE YEARS
Thorkell Krafla now began to grow very old. He was a great chieftain and
held the Vatnsdal Godord. He was a close friend of Asmund Longhair, as befitted
the near relations in which they stood to each other. He had, therefore, been
in the habit of riding every year in the spring to Bjarg to visit his kinsmen
there, and he did so in the spring which followed the events just related.
Asmund and Asdis received him with both hands. He stayed there three nights and
many a matter did the kinsmen discuss together. Thorkell asked Asmund what his
heart told him about his sons, and what professions they were likely to follow.
Asmund said that Atli would probably be a great landowner, very careful and
wealthy.
"A useful man, like yourself," said Thorkell. "But what can
you tell me of Grettir? "
"I can only say," he replied, "that he will be a strong man;
but headstrong and quarrelsome. A heavy trial has he been to me."
"That does not look very promising, kinsman!" said Thorkell.
"But how are we to arrange our journey to the Thing in the summer? "
"I am getting difficult to move," he said. "I would rather
stay at home."
"Would you like Atli to go for you?"
"I don't think I can spare him," Asmund said, "because of the
work and the provisioning. Grettir will not do anything. But he has quite wit
enough to carry out the duties at the Thing on my behalf under your
guidance."
"It shall be as you please," said Thorkell.
Then Thorkell made himself ready and rode home; Asmund dismissed him with
presents.
A little later Thorkell journeyed to the Thing with sixty men. All the men
of his godord went with him. They passed through Bjarg, where Grettir joined
them. They rode South through the heath called Tvidaegra. There was very little
grazing to be had in the hills, so they rode quickly past them into the
cultivated land. When they reached Fljotstunga they thought it was time to
sleep, so they took the bits from their horses and turned them loose with their
saddles. They lay there well on into the day, and when they woke began to look
for their horses. Every horse had gone off in a different direction and some
had been rolling. Grettir could not find his horse at all. The custom was at
that time that men should find their own provisions at the Thing, and most of
them carried their sacks over their saddles. When Grettir found his horse its
saddle was under its belly, and the sack of provisions gone. He searched about
but could not find it. Then he saw a man running very fast and asked him who he
was. He said his name was Skeggi and that he was a man from Ass in Vatnsdal in
the North.
"I am travelling with Thorkell," he said. "I have been
careless and lost my provisionbag."
"Alone in misfortune is worst. I also have lost my stock of provisions;
so we can look for them together. "
Skeggi was well pleased with this proposal, and so they went about seeking
for a time. Suddenly, when Grettir least expected it, Skeggi started running
with all his might along the moor and picked up the sack. Grettir saw him bend
and asked what it was that he had picked up.
"My sack," he said.
"Who says so besides yourself?" Grettir asked. "Let me see
it! Many a thing is like another."
Skeggi said no one should take from him what was his own. Grettir seized
hold of the sack and they both pulled at it for a time, each trying to get his
own way.
"You Midfjord men have strange notions," said Skeggi, "if you
think that because a man is not so wealthy as you are, he is not to dare to
hold to his own before you."
Grettir said it had nothing to do with a man's degree, and that each should
have that which was his own.
Skeggi replied: "Audun is now too far away to strangle you as he did at
the ballplay."
"That is well," said Grettir; "but however that may have been
you shall not strangle me."
Skeggi then seized his axe and struck at Grettir, who on seeing it seized
the handle of the axe with his left hand and pulled it forward with such force
that Skeggi at once let go. The next moment it stood in his brain and he fell
dead to the earth. Grettir took the sack, threw it across his saddle and rode
back to his companions.
Thorkell rode on, knowing nothing of what had happened. Soon Skeggi was
missed in the company, and when Grettir came up they asked him what news he had
of Skeggi. He answered in a verse:
"Hammer-troll ogress has done him to death.
Thirsting for blood the war-fiend came.
With hard-edged blade she gaped, o'er his head,
nor spared she his teeth. I saw it myself."
Then Thorkell's men sprang up and said it was impossible that a troll should
have taken the man in full daylight. Thorkell was silent for a moment. Then he
said: "There must be something more in it. Grettir must have killed him.
What was it that really happened, Grettir?"
Grettir then told him all about their fight. Thorkell said: "It is a
most unfortunate occurrence, because Skeggi was entrusted to my service, and
was a man of good family. I will take the matter upon myself and pay whatever
compensation is adjudged. But a question of banishment does not lie with me. Now,
Grettir, there are two things for you to choose between. Either you can go on
to the Thing with us and take the chance of what may happen there, or you can
turn back and go home."
Grettir decided to go on to the Thing, and to the Thing he went. The matter
was taken up by the heirs of the man slain. Thorkell gave his hand to pay the
compensation and Grettir was to be banished for three years.
On their way back from the Thing all the chiefs halted at Sledaass before
they parted company. It was then that Grettir lifted a stone lying in the
grass, which is still known as Grettishaf. Many went afterwards to see this
stone and were astounded that so young a man should have lifted such a
mountain.
Grettir rode home to Bjarg and told his father about his adventures. Asmund
was much put out and said he would be a trouble to everybody.
CHAPTER XVII
GRETTIR SAILS FOR NORWAY AND IS WRECKED ON HARAMARSEY
There dwelt at Reydarfell on the banks of the Hvita a man named Haflidi, a
mariner, owning a ship of his own which was lying in dock in the Hvita river.
He had as his mate a man named Bard who had a young and pretty wife. Asmund
sent a man to Haflidi asking him to take Grettir and look after him. Haflidi
answered that he had heard that Grettir was very difficult to get on with, but
out of friendship for Asmund he took him. Grettir, therefore, prepared to go to
sea. His father would not give him any outfit for his voyage beyond his bare
provisions and a little wadmal. Grettir asked him to give him some sort of weapon.
Asmund answered: "You have never been obedient to me. Nor do I know what
you would do with a weapon that would be of any profit. I shall not give you
any."
Grettir said: "Work not done needs no reward."
Father and son parted with little love between them. Many wished him a good
voyage, but few a safe return. His mother went with him along the road. Before
they parted she said: "You have not been sent off in the way that I should
have wished, my son, or in a way befitting your birth. The most cruel thing of
all, I think, is that you have not a weapon which you can use. My heart tells
me that you will want one."
Then she took from under her mantle a sword all ready for use, a valuable
possession. She said: "This was the sword of jokull, my father's father
and of the ancient Vatnsdal men, in whose hands it was blessed with victory. I
give it to you; use it well."
Grettir thanked her warmly and said it would be more precious to him than
any other possession though of greater value. Then he went on his way and Asdis
wished him all possible happiness. He rode South over the heath and did not
stop till he reached his ship. Haflidi received him well and asked him about
his outfit for the voyage. Grettir spoke a verse:
"Oh trimmer of sails I my father is wealthy,
but poorly enough he sent me from home.
My mother it was who gave me this sword.
True is the saying: The mother is best."
Haflidi said it was evident that she had most thought for him.
Directly they were ready and had a wind they got under way. When they were
out of shallow water they hoisted their sail. Grettir made himself a corner
under the ship's boat, whence he refused to stir either to bale or to trim the
sails or to do any work in the ship, as it was his duty to do equally with the
other men; nor would he buy himself off. They sailed to the South, rounded
Reykjanes and left the land behind them, when they met with stormy weather. The
ship was rather leaky and became very uneasy in the gale; the crew were very
much exhausted. Grettir only let fly satirical verses at them, which angered
them sorely. One day when it was very stormy and very cold the men called out
to Grettir to get up and work; they said their claws were quite frozen. He
answered:
"Twere well if every finger were froze
on the hands of such a lubberly crew."
They got no work out of him and liked him even worse than before, and said
they would pay him out on his person for his squibs and his mutinous behaviour.
"You like better," they said, "to pat the belly of Bard the
mate's wife than to bear a hand in the ship. But we don't mean to stand
it."
The weather grew steadily worse; they had to bale night and day, and they
threatened Grettir. Haflidi when he heard them went up to Grettir and said:
"I don't think your relations with the crew are very good. You are
mutinous and make lampoons about them, and they threaten to pitch you
overboard. This is most improper."
"Why cannot they mind their own business?" Grettir rejoined.
"But I should like one or two to remain behind with me before I go
overboard."
"That is impossible," said Haflidi. "We shall never get on
upon those terms. But I will make you a proposal about it."
"What is that?"
"The thing which annoys them is that you make lampoons about them. Now
I suggest that you make a lampoon about me. Then, perhaps, they will become
better disposed towards you."
"About you I will never utter anything but good," said he. "I
am not going to compare you with the sailors."
"But you might compose a verse which should at first appear foul, but
on closer view prove to be fair."
"That," he answered, "I am quite equal to."
Haflidi then went to the sailors and said: "You have much toil; and it
seems that you don't get on with Grettir."
"His lampoons," they answered, "annoy us more than anything
else."
Then Haflidi, speaking loud, said: "It will be the worse for him some
day."
Grettir, when he heard himself being denounced, spoke a verse:
"Other the words that Haflid spake
when he dined on curds at Reydarfell.
But now two meals a day he takes
in the steed of the bays mid foreland shores."
The sailors were very angry and said he should not lampoon Haflidi for
nothing. Haflidi said: "Grettir certainly deserves that you should take him
down a little, but I am not going to risk my good name because of his
ill-temper and caprice. This is not the time to pay him out, when we are all in
such danger. When you get on shore you can remember it if you like."
"Shall we not endure what you can endure?" they said. "Why
should a lampoon hurt us more than it does you? "
Haflidi said so it should be, and after that they cared less about Grettir's
lampoons.
The voyage was long and fatiguing. The ship sprung a leak, and the men began
to be worn out. The mate's young wife was in the habit of stitching Grettir's
sleeves for him, and the men used to banter him about it. Haflidi went up to
Grettir where he was lying and said:
"Arise from thy den! deep furrows we plough!
Remember the word thou didst speak to the fair.
Thy garment she sewed; but now she commands
that thou join in the toil while the land is afar."
Grettir got up at once and said:
"I will rise, though the ship be heavily rolling.
The woman is vexed that I sleep in my den.
She will surely be wrath if here I abide
while others are toiling at work that is mine."
Then he hurried aft where they were baling and asked what they wanted him to
do. They said he would do little good. He replied: "A man's help is
something." Haflidi told them not to refuse his help. "Maybe,"
he said, "he is thinking of loosening his hands if he offers his
services."
In those days in sea-going ships there were no scuppers for baling; they
only had what is called bucket or pot-baling, a very troublesome and fatiguing
process. There were two buckets, one of which went down while the other came
up. The men told Grettir to take the buckets down, and said they would try what
he could do. He said the less tried the better, and went below and filled his
bucket. There were two men above to empty the buckets as he handed them. Before
long they both gave in from fatigue. Then four others took their places, but
the same thing happened. Some say that before they were done eight men were
engaged in emptying the buckets for him. At last the ship was baled dry. After
this, the seamen altered their behaviour towards Grettir, for they realised the
strength which was in him. From that time on he was ever the forwardest to help
wherever he was required.
They now held an easterly course out to sea. It was very dark. One night
when they least expected it, they struck a rock and the lower part of the ship
began to fill. The boats were got out and the women put into them with all the
loose property. There was an island a little way off, whither they carried as
much of their property as they could get off in the night. When the day broke,
they began to ask where they were. Some of them who had been about the country
before recognised the coast of Sunnmore in Norway. There was an island lying a
little off the mainland called Haramarsey, with a large settlement and a farm
belonging to the Landman on it.
CHAPTER XVIII
ADVENTURE IN THE HOWE OF KAR THE OLD
The name of the Landman who lived in the island was Thorfinn. He was a son
of Kar the Old, who had lived there for a long time. Thorfinn was a man of
great influence.
When the day broke, the people on the island saw that there were some
sailors there in distress and reported it to Thorfinn, who at once set about to
launch his large sixteen-oared boat. He put out as quickly as possible with
some thirty men to save the cargo of the trader, which then sank and was lost,
along with much property. Thorfinn brought all the men off her to his house,
where they stayed for a week drying their goods. Then they went away to the
South, and are heard of no more in this story.
Grettir stayed behind with Thorfinn, keeping very quiet and speaking little.
Thorfinn gave him his board, but took little notice of him. Grettir held rather
aloof, and did not accompany him when he went abroad every day. This annoyed
Thorfinn, but he did not like to refuse Grettir his hospitality; he was a man
who kept open house, enjoyed life and liked to see other men happy. Grettir
liked going about and visiting the people in the other farms on the island.
There was a man named Audun, who dwelt at Vindheim. Grettir went to see him
daily and became very intimate with him, sitting there all day long.
One evening very late when Grettir was preparing to return home, he saw a great
fire shoot up on the headland below Audun's place, and asked what new thing
that might be. Audun said there was no pressing need for him to know.
"If they saw such a thing in our country," said Grettir,
"they would say the fire came from some treasure."
"He who rules that fire," answered the man, "is one whom it
will be better not to inquire about."
"But I want to know," Grettir said.
"On that headland," said Audun, "there is a howe, wherein
lies Kar the Old, the father of Thorfinn. Once upon a time father and son had a
farm-property on the island; but ever since Kar died his ghost has been walking
and has scared away all the other farmers, so that now the whole island belongs
to Thorfinn, and no man who is under Thorfinn's protection suffers any injury."
"You have done right to tell me," said Grettir. Expect me here
tomorrow morning, and have tools ready for digging."
"I won't allow you to have anything to do with it," said Audun,
"because I know that it will bring Thorfinn's wrath down upon you."
Grettir said he would risk that.
The night passed; Grettir appeared early the next morning, and the bondi,
who had got all the tools for digging ready, went with Grettir to the howe.
Grettir broke open the grave, and worked with all his might, never stopping
until he came to wood, by which time the day was already spent. He tore away
the woodwork; Audun implored him not to go down, but Grettir bade him attend to
the rope, saying that he meant to find out what it was that dwelt there. Then
he descended into the howe. It was very dark and the odour was not pleasant. He
began to explore how it was arranged, and found the bones of a horse. Then he
knocked against a sort of throne in which he was aware of a man seated. There
was much treasure of gold and silver collected together, and a casket under his
feet, full of silver. Grettir took all the treasure and went back towards the
rope, but on his way he felt himself seized by a strong hand. He left the
treasure to close with his aggressor and the two engaged in a merciless
struggle. Everything about them was smashed. The howedweller made a ferocious
onslaught. Grettir for some time gave way, but found that no holding back was
possible. They did not spare each other. Soon they came to the place where the
horse's bones were lying, and here they struggled for long, each in turn being
brought to his knees. At last it ended in the howedweller falling backwards
with a horrible crash, whereupon Audun above bolted from the rope, thinking
that Grettir was killed. Grettir then drew his sword Jokulsnaut, cut off the
head of the howedweller and laid it between his thighs. Then he went with the
treasure to the rope, but finding Audun gone he had to swarm up the rope with
his hands. First he tied the treasure to the lower end of the rope, so that he
could haul it up after him. He was very stiff from his struggle with Kar, but
he turned his steps towards Thorfinn's house, carrying the treasure along with
him. He found them all at supper. Thorfinn cast a severe glance at him and asked
what he had found so pressing to do that he could not keep proper hours like
other men.
"Many a trifle happens at eve," he replied.
Then he brought out all the treasure which he had taken from the howe and
laid it on the table. One thing there was upon which more than anything else
Grettir cast his eyes, a short sword, which he declared to be finer than any
weapon which he had ever seen. It was the last thing that he showed. Thorfinn
opened his eyes when he saw the sword, for it was an heirloom of his family and
had never been out of it.
"Whence came this treasure?" he asked.
Grettir then spake a verse:
"Scatterer of gold! 'twas the lust of wealth
that urged my hand to ravish the grave.
This know; but none hereafter, I ween,
will be fain to ransack Fafnir's lair."
Thorfinn said: "You don't seem to take it very seriously; no one ever
before had any wish to break open the howe. But since I know that all treasure
which is hidden in the earth or buried in a howe is in a wrong place I hold you
guilty of no misdeed, especially since you have brought it to me."
Grettir answered:
"The monster is slain! in the dismal tomb
I have captured a sword, dire wounder of men.
Would it were mine I a treasure so rare
I never would suffer my hand to resign."
"You have spoken well," Thorfinn answered. "But before I can
give you the sword you must display your prowess in some way. I never got it
from my father whilst he lived."
Grettir said: "No one knows to whom the greatest profit will fall ere
all is done."
Thorfinn took the treasure and kept the sword in his own custody near his
bed. The winter came on bringing Yule-tide, and nothing more happened that need
be told of.
CHAPTER XIX
BERSERKS AT HARAMARSEY
The following summer jarl Eirik the son of Hakon was preparing to leave his
country and sail to the West to join his brother-in-law King Knut the Great in
England, leaving the government of Norway in the hands of Hakon his son, who,
being an infant, was placed under the government and regency of Eirik's
brother, jarl Sveinn. Before leaving Eirik summoned all his Landmen and the
larger bondis to meet him. Eirik the jarl was an able ruler, and they had much
discussion regarding the laws and their administration. It was considered a
scandal in the land that pirates and berserks should be able to come into the
country and challenge respectable people to the holmgang for their money or
their women, no weregild being paid whichever fell. Many had lost their money
and been put to shame in this way; some indeed had lost their lives. For this
reason jarl Eirik abolished all holmgang in Norway and declared all robbers and
berserks who disturbed the peace outlaws. Thorfinn the son of Kar of
Haramarsey, being a man of wise counsel and a close friend of the jarl, was
present at the meeting.
The worst of these ruffians were two brothers named Thorir Paunch and Ogmund
the Bad. They came from Halogaland and were bigger and stronger than other men.
When angry they used to fall into the berserk's fury, and nothing escaped that
was before them. They used to carry off men's wives, keep them for a week or
two and then send them back. Wherever they came they committed robberies and
other acts of violence. Jarl Eirik had declared them outlaws throughout Norway.
The man who had been most active in getting them outlawed was Thorfinn, and
they were determined to pay him out in full for his hostility.
The jarl's expedition is told of in his saga, and the government of Norway
was left in the hands of jarl Sveinn, with the regency. Thorfinn returned home
and remained there until about Yule-tide, as has already been told. Towards
Yule-tide he made ready to go on a journey to his farm called Slysfjord on the
mainland, whither he had invited a number of his friends. He could not take his
wife with him, because their grownup daughter was lying sick, so they both had
to stay at home. Grettir and eight of the serving men remained with them.
Thorfinn went with thirty freemen to the Yule festival, at which there was much
gladness and merriment.
Yule-eve set in with bright and clear weather. Grettir, who was generally
abroad in the daytime, was watching the vessels which came along the coast,
some from the North, some from the South, meeting at the places agreed upon for
their drinkingbouts. The bondi's daughter was then better and could go out with
her mother. So the day passed. At last Grettir noticed a ship rowing up to the
island, not large, covered with shields amidships and painted above the
water-line. They were rowing briskly and making for Thorfinn's boathouses. They
ran the boat on to the beach and all sprang ashore. Grettir counted the men;
there were twelve in all, and their aspect did not look peaceful. After hauling
up their boat out of the water they all made for the boat-house where
Thorfinn's great boat, mentioned already, was stowed. She always required
thirty men to put her to sea, but the twelve shoved her along the beach at
once. Then they brought their own boat into the boat-house. It was very evident
to Grettir that they did not mean to wait for an invitation, so he went up to
them, and greeting them in a friendly way asked who they were and who was their
captain. The man whom he addressed answered him at once, saying his name was
Thorir, called Paunch; the others were his brother Ogmund with their
companions. "I think," he added, "that your master Thorfinn has
heard our names mentioned. But is he at home? "
"You must be men who have luck," said Grettir, "you have come
most opportunely, if you are the people I take you for. The bondi has gone from
home with all his freedmen and will not be back until after Yule. The goodwife
is at home with her daughter, and if I had any grudge to repay, I would come
just as you do, for there is everything here which you want, ale to drink and
other delights."
Thorir was silent while Grettir went on talking. Then he turned to Ogmund
and said: "Has anything not happened as I said it would? I should not be
sorry to punish Thorfinn for having got us outlawed. This man seems ready to tell
us everything; we don't have to drag the words out of his mouth."
"Every one is master of his own words," said Grettir. "If you
will come home with me I will give you what entertainment I can."
They thanked him and said they would accept his invitation. When they
reached the house Grettir took Thorir by the hand and led him into the hall. He
was very talkative. The mistress was in the hall decorating it and putting all
in order. On hearing what Grettir said, she came to the door and asked who it
was that Grettir was welcoming so warmly.
Grettir answered: "It will be advisable, mistress, to be civil to these
men who have come. They are the bondi Thorir Paunch and his followers, and have
come, all twelve of them, to spend Yule-tide here. It is fortunate for us, for
we have had little company till now."
She said: "I don't call them bondis, nor are they decent men, but
arrant robbers and malefactors. I would gladly pay a large portion of my
property for them not to have come just at this time. It is an ill return that
you make to Thorfinn for having saved you from shipwreck and kept you this
winter like a free man, destitute as you were."
"You would do better," said Grettir, "if you first took off
the wet clothes from your guests instead of casting reproaches upon me. You
will have plenty of time for that."
Then Thorir said: "Don't be angry, mistress! You shall lose nothing by
your husband being away, for you shall have a man in his place and so shall
your daughter and all the other women."
"That is spoken like a man," said Grettir. "The women shall
be quite contented with what they get.
Then all the women fled and began to weep, being overcome by terror. Grettir
said to the berserks: "Give me all the things which you want to lay aside,
your weapons and your wet clothes, for the men will not obey us while they are
frightened."
Thorir said he cared little for the women's whining. "But," he
said, "we mean to treat you in a different way from the other men of the
house. It seems to me that we may make a comrade of you."
"See to that yourselves," said Grettir. "But I do not look
upon all men alike."
Then they laid aside most of their weapons. Grettir said: "I think now
you had better sit down at the table and have some drink. You must be thirsty
after your rowing."
They said they were quite ready for a drink, but did not know where the
cellar was. Grettir asked whether they would let him arrange for their
entertainment, which they willingly agreed to. So Grettir went and fetched some
ale which he gave them to drink. They were very tired and drank enormously. He
kept them well plied with the strongest ale there was, and they sat there for a
long time whilst he told them funny stories. There was a tremendous din amongst
them all, and the servants had no wish to approach them.
Thorir said: "I never yet met with a stranger who treated me like this
man. What reward shall we give you for all that you have done, Grettir?"
Grettir replied: "I don't expect any reward for my services at present.
But if when you depart we are still as good friends as we seem to be now, I
should very much like to join your company, and though I may not be able to do
as much work as any of you, I will not be a hindrance in any doughty
undertaking."
They were delighted, and wanted to swear fellowship with him at once.
Grettir said that could not be, "for," he added, "there is truth
in the saying that Ale is another man, and such a thing should not be done
hastily, so let it remain at what I said; we are both little in the habit of
restraining ourselves."
They declared that they did not mean to go back. The night was now coming on
and it was getting very dark. Grettir noticed that they were rather fuddled,
and asked whether they did not think it was time to go to bed. Thorir said:
"So it is; but I have to fulfil my promise to the mistress." Grettir
then went out and called out loud: "Go to bed, women! Such is the will of
Thorir the bondi."
The women execrated him and could be heard howling like wolves. The berserks
then left the room. Grettir said: "Let us go outside; I will show you the
room in which Thorfinn keeps his clothes."
They were agreeable and all went out to an enormous outhouse, which was very
strongly built, and had a strong lock on the outer door. Adjoining it was a
large and well-built privy, with only a wooden partition between it and the
room of the outhouse, which was raised above the ground and had to be reached
by steps. The berserks then began skylarking and pushing Grettir about. He fell
down the in steps, as if in sport, and in a moment was out of the house, had
pulled the bolt, slammed the door to, and locked it. Thorir and his mates
thought at first that the door had swung to of itself, and paid little
attention; they had a light with them by which Grettir had been showing them
all Thorfinn's treasures, and they continued looking at them for some time.
Grettir went off to the homestead, and on reaching the door cried out very
loud, asking where the mistress was. She was silent, being afraid to answer. He
said: "Here is rather good sport to be had. Are there any arms which are
good for anything?"
"There are arms," she said; "but I don't know for what
purpose you want them."
"We will talk about that afterwards; but now let each do what he can;
it is the last chance."
"Now indeed were God in the dwelling," she said, "if anything
should happen to save us. Over Thorfinn's bed there hangs the great halberd
which belonged to Kar the Old; there, too, is a helmet and a corselet and a good
short sword. The weapons will not fail if your heart holds firm."
Grettir took the helmet and spear, girt the sword about him and went quickly
out. The mistress called to her men and bade them follow their brave champion.
Four of them rushed to their arms, but the other four durst not go near them.
Meantime the berserks thought that Grettir was a long time away and began to
suspect some treachery. They rushed to the door and found it locked. They
strained at the woodwork till every timber groaned. At last they tore down the
wooden partition and so gained the passage where the privy was, and thence the
steps. Then the berserks' fury fell upon them and they howled like dogs. At
that moment Grettir returned, and taking his halberd in both hands he thrust it
right through Thorir's body just as he was about to descend the steps. The
blade was very long and broad. Ogmund the Bad was just behind pushing him on,
so that the spear passed right up to the hook, came out at his back between the
shoulderblades and entered the breast of Ogmund. They both fell dead, pierced
by the spear. Then all the others dashed down as they reached the steps.
Grettir tackled them each in turn, now thrusting with the spear, now hewing
with the sword, while they defended themselves with logs lying on the ground or
with anything else which they could get. It was a terrible trial of a man's
prowess to deal with men of their strength, even unarmed.
Grettir slew two of the Halogaland men there in the enclosure. Four of the
serving-men then came up. They had not been able to agree upon which arms each
should take, but they came out to the attack directly the berserks were running
away; when these turned against them they fell back on the house. Six of the
ruffians fell, all slain by Grettir's own hand; the other six then fled towards
the landing place and took refuge in the boat-house, where they defended
themselves with oars. Grettir received a severe blow from one of them and
narrowly escaped a serious hurt.
The serving-men all went home and told great stories of their own exploits.
The lady wanted to know what had become of Grettir, but they could not tell
her. Grettir slew two men in the boat- house, but the other four got away, two
in one direction, two in another. He pursued those who were nearest to him. The
night was very dark. They ran to Vindheim, the place spoken of before, and took
refuge in a barn, where they fought for a long time until at last Grettir
killed them. By this time he was terribly stiff and exhausted. The night was far
spent; it was very cold and there were driving snow-storms. He felt little
inclination to go after the two who yet remained, so he went back home. The
goodwife kindled a light and put it in a window in the loft at the top of the
house, where it served him as a guide, and he was able to find his way home by
the light. When he came to the door the mistress came to meet him and bade him
welcome.
"You have earned great glory," she said, "and have saved me
and my household from a disgrace never to be redeemed if you had not delivered
us."
"I think I am much the same person as I was last evening when you spoke
so roughly to me," said Grettir.
"We knew not then the might that was in you," she said, "as
we know it now. Everything in the house shall be yours, so far as it is fitting
for me to bestow and right for you to receive. I doubt not that Thorfinn will
reward you in a better way when he comes home."
"There is little that I want as a reward at present," said
Grettir. "But I accept your offer until your husband returns. I think now
that you will be able to sleep in peace undisturbed by the berserks."
Grettir drank little before he retired and lay all night in his armour. In
the morning, directly the day broke, all the men of the island were called
together to go forth and search for the two berserks who had escaped. They were
found at the end of the day lying under a rock, both dead from cold and from
their wounds; they were carried away and buried in a place on the shore beneath
the tide, with some loose stones over them, after which the islanders returned
home, feeling that they could live in peace. When Grettir came back to the
house and met the mistress he spoke a verse:
"Near the surging sea the twelve lie buried.
I stayed not my hand but slew them alone.
Great lady! what deed that is wrought by a man
shall be sung of as worthy if this be deemed small."
She answered: "Certainly you are very unlike any other man now
living." She set him in the high seat and gave him the best of everything.
So it remained until Thorfinn returned.
CHAPTER XX
THORFINN'S RETURN. GRETTIR VISITS THE NORTH
When Yule-tide was past, Thorfinn made ready for his homeward journey and
dismissed his many guests with gifts. He sailed with all his men and landed
near the place where the boat-houses were. They saw a ship lying on the sand
which they at once recognised as his great boat. Thorfinn had heard nothing of
the vikings and told his men to put him on shore, "for I suspect," he
said, "that they are not friends who have been at work here."
Thorfinn was the first to land, and went straight to the boat- house, where
he saw a craft which he knew at once to be that of the berserks. He said to his
men: "I suspect that things have taken place here such that I would give
the whole island and everything that is in it for them not to have
happened."
They asked how that was.
"Vikings have been here, men whom I know as the worst in all Norway,
namely Thorir Paunch and Ogmund the Bad. They will not have dealt gently with
us. I mistrust that Icelander."
Then he spoke many things to his men. Grettir was at home and detained the
men from going down to the shore. He said he did not care if the bondi got a
little fright from what he saw. The goodwife asked his leave to go down, and he
said she was mistress of her own ways, but that he was not going. So she
hurried away to greet Thorfinn and embraced him joyfully. He was rejoiced to
see her and said: "God be praised that I see you well and my daughter too.
But what has happened to you since I left?"
"It has ended well," she said. "But we were nigh to suffering
a disgrace which could never have been wiped out, had not your winter-guest
aided us."
Thorfinn said: "Let us sit down and you shall tell me everything."
Then she told him fully all that had happened, praising highly Grettir's
courage and resourcefulness. Thorfinn was silent while she was speaking, and
when she had finished he said: "True indeed is the word, `Long shall a man
be tried'. But where is Grettir?"
"He is at home in the hall," she answered.
Then they went up to the house. Thorfinn went to Grettir and turned towards
him and thanked him with the fairest words for his courageous conduct.
"I will say a word to you," he said, "which few would say to
their friend. I would it might happen that you should need the help of a man,
for you to know whether I count for anything or not; I cannot repay what you
have done for me as long as you are not in straits. You shall have in my house
whatever you desire, and shall be in the highest honour in my household."
Grettir thanked him and said he would have accepted his offer even if he had
made it earlier.
Grettir stayed there the rest of the winter in high favour with Thorfinn.
The fame of his deed spread through all Norway, especially in those parts where
the berserks had ravaged most mercilessly. In the spring Thorfinn asked him
what he would like to do. He said he would go North to Vagar while the fair was
on there. Thorfinn said that any money which he required should be at his
service; Grettir said he did not want more just then than enough to pay for his
living. Thorfinn said that was his due, and brought him to a ship, where he
gave him the excellent short sword. Grettir kept it as long as he lived; it was
a most precious possession. Thorfinn bade him come to him if ever he wanted any
help.
Grettir then travelled to Vagar, which was crowded with people. Many whom he
had never set eyes on before greeted him warmly because of his exploit in
killing the vikings, and several of the leading men invited him to stay with
them, but he preferred to return to his friend Thorfinn. So he took his passage
in a trading ship belonging to one Thorkell, a man of some consideration in
Salfti in Halogaland. Grettir went to visit Thorkell in his home, where he
received a hearty welcome and a very pressing invitation to stay there for the
winter. Grettir accepted the invitation and stayed the winter with Thorkell,
who treated him with great honour.
CHAPTER XXI
ADVENTURE WITH A BEAR
There was a man named Bjorn who was then on a visit to Thorkell. He was of a
somewhat violent character of good family and related in some way to Thorkell.
He was not generally liked, because he was too much given to talking against
the men who were about Thorkell and drove many away from him. He and Grettir
did not get on at all. Bjorn thought him of small account compared to himself;
Grettir paid him little deference, and it became an open feud. Bjorn was a
boisterous swaggering man, and many of the younger men imitated him, loitering
about outside in the evenings.
It happened at the beginning of the winter that a savage brown bear broke
out of its den and raged about destroying men and cattle. Every one declared
that it had been provoked by the noise which Bjorn and his company made. The
beast became most mischievous, attacking the flocks in the very face of the men
themselves. Thorkell, being the wealthiest man of that part, suffered most. One
day he called up his men to come with him and search out the bear's den. They
found it in a cliff by the sea where there was a cave under an overhanging
rock, with a narrow path leading to the entrance. Below was a sheer precipice
down to the beach, threatening certain death to any one who stumbled. In this
den the bear lay in the daytime, going abroad at night. Fences were of no avail
against him, nor could the dogs do anything, so that all were in the utmost
distress. Thorkell's kinsman Bjorn declared that the main thing was gained now
that they had found the den. "Now we shall see," he said, "how
the game will go with me and my namesake." Grettir pretended not to hear
what he said.
In the evenings when the others retired to bed, Bjorn used generally to go
out. One night he went to the bear's den and found the creature inside,
growling horribly. He lay down in the path, placing his shield over him,
intending to wait until the beast came out as usual. Bruin, however, got wind
of him and was rather slow in coming out. Bjorn got very sleepy where he was
lying and could not keep awake; in the meantime out came the bear from his den
and saw a man lying there. He clawed at him, dragged off his shield and threw
it down the cliff. Bjorn woke up, not a little startled, took to his heels and
ran off home, narrowly escaping the bear's clutches. His friends knew all about
it, having watched his movements; on the next morning they found the shield and
made great game of his adventure.
At Yule-time Thorkell himself went out to the den with Bjorn, Grettir and
others of his men, a party of eight in all. Grettir had on a fur cape which he
put off when they were attacking the bear. It was rather difficult to get at
him, since they could only reach him with spear-thrusts, which he parried with
his teeth. Bjorn kept urging them on to tackle him, but himself did not go near
enough to be in any danger. At last, when no one was looking out, he took
Grettir's fur cloak and threw it in to the bear. They did not succeed in
getting the bear out, and when night came on turned to go home. Grettir then
missed his cloak and saw that the bear had got it into his grip.
"Who has been playing tricks on me?" he cried. "Who threw my
cloak into the cave?"
Bjorn answered: "He who did it will not be afraid to say so."
"Things of that sort do not trouble me much," said Grettir.
Then they started on their way home. After they had gone a little way
Grettir's garter broke. Thorkell told them to wait for him, but Grettir said it
was not necessary. Then Bjorn said: "There is no need to suppose that
Grettir will run away from his cloak. He wants to have the honour of killing
the beast all alone, and he will say that we eight men went away. Then he would
appear to be what he is said to be. He has been backward enough all day."
"I don't know how you stand in that matter," said Thorkell.
"You and he are not equal in valour; do not make any to-do about
him."
Bjorn said that neither he nor Grettir should choose the words out of his
mouth.
There was a hill between them and Grettir, who had turned back along the
footpath. Now he had no others to reckon with in making the attack. He drew his
sword Jokulsnaut and tied a loop round the handle which he passed over his
wrist, because he thought that he could carry out his plans better if his hand
were free. He went along the path. When the bear saw a man coming, he charged
savagely, and struck at him with the paw that was on the side away from the
precipice. Grettir aimed a blow at him with his sword and cut off his paw just
above the claws. Then the creature tried to strike him with his sound paw, but
to do so he had to drop on the stump, which was shorter than he expected, and
over he fell into Grettir's embraces. Grettir seized the beast by the ears and
held him off so that he could not bite. He always said that he considered this
holding back the bear the greatest feat of strength that he ever performed. The
beast struggled violently; the space was very narrow, and they both fell over
the precipice. The bear being the heavier came down first on the beach; Grettir
fell on the top of him, and the bear was badly mauled on the side that was
down. Grettir got his sword, ran it into the heart of the bear and killed him.
Then he went home, after fetching his cloak which was torn to pieces. He also
took with him the bit of the paw which he had cut off.
Thorkell was sitting and drinking when Grettir entered. They all laughed at
the ragged cloak which he was wearing. Then he laid the piece of the paw upon
the table. Thorkell said: "Where is my kinsman Bjorn? I never saw iron
bite like that in your hands. Now I would like you to show Grettir some honour
to make up for the shame which you cast upon him."
Bjorn said that could wait, and that it mattered little to him whether
Grettir was pleased or not. Grettir then spoke a verse:
"Oft returned the watcher at night
trembling home, but sound in limb.
None ever saw me sit in the dusk
at the cave; yet now I am home returned."
"It is true," said Bjorn, "that you have fought well; and
also true that our opinions differ. I suppose you think that your taunts hurt
me."
Thorkell said: "I should be glad, Grettir, if you would not revenge
yourself upon Bjorn. I will pay the full weregild of a man for you to be
reconciled."
Bjorn said he might invest his money better than in paying for that; and
that it would be better for him and Grettir to go on bickering since "each
oak has that which it scrapes from the other." Thorkell said: "But I
ask you, Grettir, to do so much for my sake as not to attack Bjorn while you
are both with me."
"That I promise," said Grettir.
Bjorn said that he would walk without fear of Grettir wherever they met.
Grettir grinned, and would accept no money on account of Bjorn. They stayed
there the winter.
CHAPTER XXII
GRETTIR KILLS BJORN AND IS SUMMONED BEFORE JARL SVEINN
In the spring Grettir went North to Vagar with Thorkell's men. They parted
with friendship. Bjorn went West to England in Thorkell's ship, of which he was
master, staying there for the summer and transacting the business which
Thorkell had entrusted to him. In the end of the autumn he returned from the
western parts. Grettir stayed in Vagar till the trading ships left, and then
sailed South with some of the traders, as far as the port of Gartar at the
mouth of the Thrandheim's Fjord, where he set up the awnings to make a stay.
When they were settled down a ship came up along the coast from the South,
which they at once recognised as one of the ships from England. She made fast
further out off the coast and her crew landed. Grettir went out with his
companions to visit them. On their meeting Grettir found Bjorn amongst the
company and said: "It is well that we meet here, for now we can continue
our former quarrel. I should like to try which of us is the better man."
Bjorn said that was all past now, as far as he was concerned.
"But," he said, "if there has been anything between us I will
pay you such compensation that you shall be satisfied." Grettir spoke a
verse:
"Time was when the bear was slain by my hand;
my cloak in tatters was torn.
A rascally knave was the cause of it all
but now he shall make me amends."
Bjorn said that weightier matters than this had been settled by payment.
Grettir said that few men had any reason to act maliciously towards him; he had
accepted no money-atonement, nor would he do so now; that if he had his way
they should not both go away unhurt, and that if Bjorn refused to fight he
would brand him as a coward. Bjorn saw that excuses would not avail him, so he
took his arms and went out. They rushed at each other and fought; soon Bjorn
was wounded and then he fell dead to the ground. On seeing that, his men went
on board their ship, sailed away to the North along the coast to Thorkell's
place and told him what had happened. He said it had not come sooner than he
expected. Directly afterwards he sailed to the South to Thrandheim where he
found jarl Sveinn.
Grettir, after slaying Bjorn, went to More to his friend Thorfinn and told
him exactly what had happened. Thorfinn received him in a most friendly way.
"I am glad," he said, "that you will now have need of a friend.
You must stay with me until this affair is finished."
Grettir thanked him for his invitation and said be would accept it.
Jarl Sveinn was staying at Steinker in Thrandheim when he heard of the Slaying
of Bjorn. With him was a brother of Bjorn named Hjarrandi, as one of his
bodyguard. On hearing of Bjorn's death he became very angry and begged the jarl
for his support in the matter, which the jarl promised that he should have. He
sent messengers to Thorfinn to summon both him and Grettir to appear before
him. Immediately on receiving the jarl's commands they both made ready and came
to Thrandheim. The jarl held a council on the matter and ordered Hjarrandi to
be present. Hjarrandi said he was not going to weigh his brother against his
purse, and that he must either follow him or avenge him.
When the case was looked into, it became evident that Bjorn had given
Grettir many provocations. Thorfinn offered to pay a fine such as the jar]
thought suitable to the position of his kinsman, and dwelt at length upon
Grettir's achievement in killing the berserks, and how he had delivered the men
in the North from them.
The jarl answered: "Truth do you speak, Thorfinn! that was indeed a
cleansing! It would befit us well to accept the compensation for your sake.
Grettir, too, is a fine fellow, and noted for his strength and valour."
Hjarrandi, however, would accept no compensation, and the meeting came to an
end. Thorfinn appointed one of his kinsmen, Arnbjorn, to accompany Grettir
every day, for he knew that Hjarrandi was plotting against his life.
CHAPTER XXIII
GRETTIR KILLS HJARRANDI
One day Grettir and Arnbjorn were walking along the road for their diversion
when they passed a gate, whence a man rushed out holding an axe aloft with both
hands and struck at Grettir, who was not on his guard and was moving slowly.
Arnbjorn, however, saw the man coming, seized Grettir and pushed him aside with
such force that he fell on his knee. The axe struck him in the shoulder-blade
and cut down to below the arm, inflicting a severe wound. Grettir turned
quickly and drew his sword; he saw that it was Hjarrandi who had attacked him.
The axe had stuck fast in the road, and Hjarrandi was slow in recovering it.
Grettir struck at him and cut off his arm at the shoulder. Then there came
running up five of Hjarrandi's followers and a battle began with them. They
were soon routed; Grettir and Arnbjorn killed the five who were with Hjarrandi;
one man escaped and bore the tale to the jarl forthwith. The jarl was very
angry indeed, and summoned the assembly for the next day. Thorfinn and his
party appeared thereat. The jarl brought a charge of manslaughter against
Grettir, who admitted it and said that he had been obliged to defend himself.
"I bear the marks of it," he said. "I should have been killed if
Arnbjorn had not defended me."
The jarl said it was a pity he had not been killed, for this affair would
lead to many a man being slain if he lived.
There had come to the jarl's court Bersi the son of Skaldtorfa, Grettir's
comrade and friend. He and Thorfinn stepped before the jarl and begged for
pardon for Grettir. They asked that the jarl should decide the matter himself
as he thought best, only that Grettir should have his life and the freedom of
the country. The jarl was averse to any terms being granted to him, but gave
way to their entreaties. He granted immunity to Grettir until the spring, but
not absolutely until Gunnar the brother of Bjorn and Hjarrandi should be
present. Gunnar was a landed proprietor in Tunsberg.
In the spring the jarl ordered Grettir and Thorfinn to appear at Tunsberg,
where he himself intended to be while the shipping was assembled. So thither
they went, and found the jarl was already in the town. There Grettir met his
brother Thorsteinn Dromund, who greeted him joyfully and invited him to be his
guest. He was a landowner in the town. Grettir told him all about his case, and
Thorsteinn took his view of it, but told him to beware of Gunnar. So the spring
passed.
CHAPTER XXIV
GRETTIR KILLS GUNNAR. HIS FRIENDS RALLY ROUND HIM AND SAVE HIM FROM THE
VENGEANCE OF THE JARL
Gunnar was in the town and was plotting against Grettir's life. Wherever he
went Gunnar dogged his steps wherever he found a chance of getting near him.
One day Grettir was sitting in a booth and drinking, because he wanted to keep
out of Gunnar's way. Suddenly there was a bang at the door, so hard that it
broke in pieces, and in rushed four men armed and attacked Grettir. They were
Gunnar with his followers. Grettir seized his arms which were hanging above his
head and ran into a corner, where he defended himself, holding his shield
before him, and hewing with his sword. They made little way against him. One
blow he succeeded in delivering upon one of Gunnar's followers, who needed
nothing more. Then Grettir advanced, driving them before him out of the booth,
and killing another of them. Gunnar would fain have got away with his men, but
on reaching the door he caught his foot on the doorstep, fell over and was not
able to recover himself at once. He held his shield before him and retreated as
Grettir pressed him hard. Then Grettir sprang on to the crossbenches near the
door. Gunnar's hands and the shield were still inside the door, and Grettir struck
down between him and the shield, cutting off both his hands at the wrist. He
fell backwards out of the door, and Grettir gave him his death-blow. Then the
man who was behind him got on his feet and ran off at once to tell the jarl
what had happened. Sveinn was furious, and called the assembly to meet there
and then in the town. When Thorfinn and Thorsteinn Dromund heard the news, they
called all their followers and friends together and went to the meeting in
force. The jarl was very wroth, and it was no easy matter to get speech with
him. Thorfinn was the first to come before the jarl, and he said: "I have
come to offer an honourable atonement for the man who has been slain by
Grettir. The judgment shall remain with you alone if you but spare his life."
The jarl replied in great wrath: "It is too late to beg for Grettir's
life, and you have no case that I can see. He has killed three brothers, one at
the feet of the other; men of noble minds who would not weigh each other
against their purses. Now, Thorfinn, it will not avail you to beg for Grettir;
I will not do such a wrong in the land as to accept atonement for such a crime
as this."
Then Bersi the son of Skaldtorfa came up and begged the jarl to accept
blood-money. "Grettir," he said, "is a man of high birth and is
my good friend. I offer you what I possess. May you see, my lord, that it is
better by sparing one man to earn the goodwill of many and to fix the penalty
yourself than to refuse honourable terms and risk whether you can arrest the
man or not."
The jarl replied: "You do right, Bersi; and herein as ever you show
your worth. But I do not mean to break the laws of the land by granting life to
a man who has forfeited it."
Then Thorsteinn Dromund came forward, and he, too, offered blood-money on behalf
of Grettir, adding many fair words thereto. The jarl asked what moved him to
offer blood-money for the man. Thorsteinn said Grettir was his brother. The
jarl said he had not known that.
"It shows a manly spirit in you," he said, "that you want to
help him. But as I am determined not to accept blood-money in this case, I must
treat the requests of all of you alike. I must have Grettir's life whatever it
cost, directly I can get him."
Then the jarl rose quickly up and refused to hear any more about atonement.
They all went home with Thorsteinn and made their preparations, whereupon the
jarl ordered all the men of his guard under arms and went forth with a large
force. Before they came up, Grettir's friends had made ready to defend the
house. Thorfinn, Thorsteinn, Grettir himself, and Bersi were in the forefront,
each with a large force of followers behind him. The jarl summoned them to give
up Grettir, and not to bring trouble on themselves. They repeated their former
offers, but the jarl would not listen to them. Thorfinn and Thorsteinn said
that more was at stake for the jarl than the taking of Grettir's life.
"One fate shall fall upon us all," they cried, "and men shall
say that you have given much for the life of one man when we are all laid low
with the ground."
The jarl said he would spare none of them, and they were on the very verge
of a battle when many of the well-disposed men came up to him and begged him
not to land himself in such a difficulty. He should bear in mind that these men
would work great havoc among his own followers before they fell. The jarl
thought this counsel was wise and let himself be somewhat appeased. Then the
terms of atonement were settled. Thorfinn and Thorsteinn were ready to pay so
long as Grettir's life was spared. The jarl said: "You must know that
although I agree to this compromise, I do not consider it a full amnesty. Only
I have no mind to fight against my own men, although they appear to hold me of
little account in the matter."
Thorfinn said: "Yours is all the greater honour, my lord, that you will
have the fixing of the penalty yourself."
The jarl said that Grettir should have leave from him to depart from the
country in peace for Iceland, directly there was a ship leaving, if so it
seemed good to them. They agreed and paid the money to the jarl to his
satisfaction. They parted with little friendship. Grettir went with Thorfinn
after bidding an affectionate farewell to his brother Thorsteinn.
Thorfinn earned great honour for the support which he had given Grettir
against such odds as he had to deal with. Not one of the men who had helped
Grettir was ever received into favour again with the jarl, excepting Bersi.
Grettir then spoke:
"Comrade of Odin, Thorfinn was born
to rescue my life from the fangs of Hel.
No less was Thorsteinn Dromund's aid
when I was doomed to the realm of the dead."
And again:
"The prince's retainers withdrew in fear
when Bersi threatened their hearts to pierce."
Grettir returned with Thorfinn to the North and stayed with him until he
found a ship with some traders who were bound for Iceland. Thorfinn gave him
many valuable garments and a coloured saddle with a bridle. They parted with
friendship, and Thorfinn invited him to come and see him if ever he returned to
Norway.
CHAPTER XXV
EVENTS IN ICELAND. THORGILS MAKSSON ATTACKED BY THE FOSTER- BROTHERS AND
SLAIN
Asmund Longhair was in Bjarg whilst Grettir was away, and was much respected
as a bondi in Midfjord. Thorkell Krafla had died during Grettir's absence.
Thorvald Asgeirsson dwelt in Ass in Vatnsdal and was a great chief. He was the
father of Dalla who married Isleif, afterwards bishop in Skalaholt. Asmund had
great support from Thorvald in legal suits and in other matters.
There grew up in Asmund's household a youth named Thorgils Maksson, a near
kinsman of his. Thorgils was a strong man of his body and made much money under
Asmund's guidance; he dwelt at Laekjamot, on a property which Asmund had bought
for him. Thorgils was a good manager and went to Strandir every year, where he
obtained whales and other things. He was a man of great courage, and went as
far as the eastern Almenningar. At that time the two foster-brothers Thorgeir
Havarsson and Thormod Coalbrow-Skald were very much to the front; they kept a
boat, gathering what they wanted from the country around, and had not the
reputation of dealing fairly.
One summer Thorgils Maksson found a whale at the Almenningar and went out at
once with his men to cut it up. When the two foster-brothers heard of it they
went there too, and at first it seemed as if matters would be settled
peaceably. Thorgils proposed that they should share equally that part of the
whale which was yet uncut, but they wanted to have all the uncut part or else
to share the entire whale. Thorgils positively refused to give up any portion
of what had already been cut. They began to use threats and at last took to
their arms and fought. Thorgeir and Thorgils fought each of them desperately
together without either prevailing. After a long and furious battle Thorgils
fell slain by Thorgeir. In another place Thormod was fighting with the
followers of Thorgils, and he overcame them, killing three. Those who remained
of Thorgils' party went off after he fell to Midfjord, taking his body with
them and feeling that they had suffered a great loss. The foster-brothers took
possession of the whole whale. The affair is referred to in the memorial poem
which Thormod composed upon Thorgeir.
News of the death of his kinsman was brought to Asmund Longhair, on whom as
nearest of kin the blood-feud devolved. He went to the spot, called witnesses
to testify to the wounds and brought the case before the All-Thing, which
appeared to be the proper course in this case where the act had been committed in
another quarter. Some time was passed over this.
CHAPTER XXVI
THE FEUD WITH THE FOSTER-BROTHERS IS TAKEN UP BY ASMUND AND THORSTEINN
KUGGASON
There was a man named Thorsteinn; he was the son of Thorkell Kuggi, the son
of Thord Yeller, the son of Olaf Feilan, the son of Thorsteinn the Red, the son
of Aud the Deep-Minded. Thorsteinn Kuggason's mother was Thurid, daughter of
Asgeir Hothead. Asgeir was the brother of Asmund Longhair's father. Thorsteinn
Kuggason was equally responsible in the blood-feud over Thorgils' death with
Asmund Longhair, who now sent for him. Thorsteinn was a great warrior and very
masterful. He came at once to his kinsman Asmund and they had a talk together
about the suit. Thorsteinn was for extreme measures. He said that no blood-money
should be accepted; that with their connections they were powerful enough to
carry through a sentence of either banishment or death on the slayer. Asmund
said he would support any measures whatever that he chose to adopt. They rode
then North to Thorvald their kinsman and asked for his support, which he at
once promised them. So the suit was begun against Thorgeir and Thormod.
Thorsteinn then rode home to his dwelling at Ljarskogar in the Hvamm district.
Skeggi in Hvamm also joined Thorsteinn. He was a son of Thorarin Fylsenni, a
son of Thord the Yeller. His mother was Fridgerd, a daughter of Thord from
Hofdi. They had a large following at the All-Thing and pressed their suit
valiantly. Asmund and Thorvald rode from the North with sixty men, halting several
days at Ljarskogar.
CHAPTER XXVII
SENTENCES ON THE FOSTER-BROTHERS
There dwelt at Reykjaholar a man named Thorgils, the son of Ari, the son of
Mar, the son of Atli the Red, the son of Ulf Squint- Eye, the first settler at
Reykjanes. Thorgils' mother was Thorgerd the daughter of Alf of Dalir. Alf had
another daughter named Thorelf, who was the mother of Thorgeir the son of
Havar. Thorgeir, therefore, had a very strong backing through his connections,
for Thorgils was the most powerful chief in the Vestfirding quarter. He was
very open-handed and gave hospitality to any free-man for as long as he would.
There was consequently always a crowd at Reykjaholar, and he lived in great
grandeur. He was both kindly and wise. Thorgeir stayed with him in the winter
and went to Strandir in the summer.
After slaying Thorgils the son of Mak, Thorgeir went to Reykjaholar and told
Thorgils Arason what had happened. Thorgils told him his house was open to him.
"But," he said, "they will press the matter vigorously, and I am
most unwilling to involve myself in difficulties. I will send a man now to
Thorsteinn and offer him blood-money for the Thorgils affair; if he will not
accept it I will not adopt any violent measures."
Thorgeir declared that he would submit to his wisdom. In the autumn Thorgils
sent a messenger to Thorsteinn Kuggason to try and arrange a settlement.
Thorsteinn was very disinclined to accept any money in atonement for the
slaying of Thorgils, although for the others he was willing to follow the advice
of men of counsel. Thorgils on receiving the report of his messenger called
Thorgeir to a consultation with him and asked him what support he thought was
proper. Thorgeir said that if a sentence of banishment were passed upon him he
would go. Thorgils said that his resolve would be put to the trial.
There came a ship into the Nordra river in Borgarfjord, and Thorgils
secretly took a passage in her for the two foster- brothers. The winter now
passed, and Thorgils heard that Thorsteinn and his party had assembled in great
force for the All-Thing and were then in Ljarskogar. So he put off his
departure, intending that they should arrive from the North before he came up
from the West. So it came to pass. Thorgils and Thorgeir then rode towards the
South, Thorgeir killing one Boggul-Torfi on the way at Marskelda and two other
men named Skuf and Bjarni at Hundadal. Thormod sings about this affair in his
Thorgeir's drapa:
"The hem slew the son of Mak;
there was storm of swords and raven's food.
Skuf and Bjami he also felled;
gladly he bathed his hands in blood."
Thorgils settled for the slaying of Skuf and Bjarni there and then in the
dale, and was delayed by the affair longer than he intended. Thorgeir embarked
on the ship and Thorgils went to the Thing, where he did not arrive before they
were proceeding to judgment in Thorgils Maksson's case. Asmund Longhair then
called for the defence. Thorgils appeared before the court and offered
blood-money in atonement on condition of Thorgeir not being sentenced to banishment.
He endeavoured to meet the charge by pleading that finds in the Almenningar
were free to all. The question whether this was a valid defence or not was
referred to the Lawman, who at that time was Skapti. He upheld Asmund's view on
account of their kinship together. He declared that this was indeed the law in
the case of men equal in position, but that a bondi had precedence over a
vagrant. Asmund further urged that Thorgils had offered to share the uncut
portion of the whale with the foster-brothers when they arrived. The defendants
were non-suited on that point. Then Thorsteinn and his party pressed their suit
resolutely and said they would not be satisfied with any sentence short of
banishment upon Thorgeir. Thorgils saw that no choice was left to him but
either to call up his men and try to carry his case with violence, the issue of
which would be uncertain, or else to submit to the sentence demanded by the
opposite party, and since Thorgeir was already on board his ship Thorgils had
no desire to press the case further. Thorgeir was banished, but Thormod was
discharged upon payment of blood-money. Asmund and Thorsteinn gained great
glory by this case. The men rode home from the Thing. There were some who said
that Thorgils had not taken much trouble in the case, but he paid little
attention and let them say what they pleased.
When Thorgeir heard that he was banished, he said that if he had his way,
those who had brought it about should be repayed in full before it was over.
There was a man named Gaut, called the son of Sleita, a kinsman of Thorgils
Maksson. He was intending to travel in the same ship with Thorgeir, with whom
he was on very bad terms, and frowned on him. The traders thought it would
never do to have them both together in the ship. Thorgeir said he did not care
what Gaut did with his eyebrows. Nevertheless they decided that Gaut should
leave the ship. He went into the northern districts and for that time nothing
happened, but the affair brought about a feud between them which broke out
later.
CHAPTER XXVIII
GRETTIR'S VISIT TO AUDUN IN VIDIDAL; OFFERS HIS SERVICES TO BARDI
In the course of that summer Grettir Asmundsson returned to Skagafjord. He
had such a reputation for strength that none of the younger men was supposed to
be his equal. He soon came to his home in Bjarg, and Asmund gave him a fitting
welcome. Atli was then managing the property and the brothers agreed well
together, but Grettir became so over-weening that he thought nothing was beyond
his powers.
Many of the youths with whom Grettir had played at Midfjordsvatn before he
left were now grown up. Audun, the son of Asgeir, the son of Audun, was now
living at Audunarstad in Vididal. He was a good bondi and a kindly man, and was
the strongest of all the men in the northern parts, as well as the most modest.
Grettir had not forgotten how he had seemingly been worsted by Audun at the
ball-play, as related above, and he was anxious to try which of them had gained
most since. With this object he went at the beginning of the hay-harvest to
Audunarstad. Grettir put on all his finery and rode with the coloured and
richly ornamented saddle which Thorfinn had given him, on a splendid horse and
in his best armour to Audun's place, where he arrived early in the day and
knocked at the door. Few of the men were in the house, and to Grettir's
question whether Audun was at home, they replied that he had gone to the
hill-dairy to bring home some produce. Grettir took the bridle off his horse.
The hay had not been mown in the meadow and the horse went for the part where
the grass was thickest. Grettir entered the room and sat down on the bench,
where he fell asleep. Soon Audun returned home and saw a horse in the meadow
with a coloured saddle on its back. He was bringing two horses loaded with
curds in skins tied at the mouth -- so-called "curd-bags." Audun took
the skins off the horses and was carrying them in his arms so that he could not
see in front of him. Grettir's leg was stretched out before him and Audun
stumbled over it, falling on the curd-bags which broke at the neck. Audun
sprang up and asked what rascal that was in his house. Grettir told him his
name.
"That was very awkward of you," said Audun. "But what do you
want here?"
"I want to fight with you."
"First I must look after my dairy produce," Audun said.
"You can do that," answered Grettir, "if you have no one else
to do it for you."
Audun bent down, gathered up the skin and threw it right into Grettir's
breast, telling him to take what he sent him. Grettir was all covered with
curds, and felt more disgusted than at any wound which Audun could have given
him. Then they went for each other and wrestled pretty smartly. Grettir rushed
at him, but Audun escaped his grasp. He saw, however, that Grettir had gained
upon him. They drove up and down the room, overthrowing everything that was
near them. Neither of them spared himself, but Grettir had the advantage, and
at last Audun fell, after tearing off all Grettir's weapons. They struggled
hard and the din was terrific.
Then there was a loud noise below. Grettir heard a man ride up to the house,
get off his horse and come quickly inside. He saw a handsome man in a red
jacket wearing a helmet. Hearing the commotion going on in the room where they
were wrestling, he came in and asked what was in the room. Grettir told him his
name; "but who is it that wants to know?" he asked.
"My name is Bardi," answered the stranger.
"Are you Bardi the son of Gudmund from Asbjarnarnes?"
"The same," he replied. "But what are you after?"
Grettir said: "I and Audun are playing here."
"I don't know about your play," said Bardi. "But you are not
alike. You are overbearing and insolent, while he is modest and good-natured.
Let him get up at once."
Grettir said: "Many a man seizes the lock for the door. You would do
better to avenge your brother Hall than to come between me and Audun when we
are contending."
"I am always hearing that," said Bardi, "and I don't know
whether I shall ever obtain my vengeance. But I want you to leave Audun in
peace, for he is a quiet man."
Grettir said he was willing to do so because of Bardi's intercession, though
he did not like it much. Bardi asked what they were contending about. Grettir
replied in a verse:
"I know not if for all your pride
he may not try your throat to squeeze.
Thus when within my home I dwelt
did he once belabour me."
Bardi said there was certainly some excuse if he was taking revenge.
"Let me now settle it between you," he said. "Let matters remain
as they are and cease your strife."
So they consented, for they were kinsmen. But Grettir had little liking for
Bardi or his brothers. They all rode away together. On the way Grettir said:
"I hear, Bardi, that you intend to go South to Borgarfjord this summer; I
propose that I shall go with you, which I think is more than you deserve."
Bardi was very pleased with this offer, and at once accepted it most
thankfully. Then they parted. Bardi then turned back and said to Grettir:
"I would like it to be understood that you only come with me if it meets
with Thorarin's approval, since all the arrangements for the expedition are
with him."
"I thought," said Grettir, "you were competent to make your
arrangements for yourself. I do not leave my affairs to other people to settle.
I shall take it very ill if you refuse me."
Then each went his own way. Bardi promised to send Grettir word "if
Thorarin wished him to go." Otherwise he could remain quietly at home.
Grettir then rode to Bjarg and Bardi to his own home.
CHAPTER XXIX
HORSE-FIGHT AT LANGAFIT
That summer there was a great horse-fight at Langafit below Reykir, whither
a great many people came together. Atli of Bjarg had a good stallion of
Keingala's race; grey with a dark stripe down his back. Both father and son
valued the horse highly. The two brothers Kormak and Thorgils in Mel had a very
mettlesome brown stallion, and they arranged to match it against that of Atli
from Bjarg. Many other excellent stallions were brought. Odd the Needy-Skald,
Kormak's kinsman, had the charge of their horse on the day. He had grown into a
strong man and had a high opinion of himself; he was surly and reckless.
Grettir asked Atli who should have charge of his stallion.
"That is not so clear to me," said Atli.
"Would you like me to back him?"
"Then you must keep very cool, kinsman," he said. "We have
men to deal with who are rather overbearing."
"Let them pay for their bluster," he said, "if they cannot
control it."
The stallions were led out and the mares tethered together in the front on
the bank of the river. There was a large pool just beyond the bank. The horses
fought vigorously and there was excellent sport. Odd managed his horse pluckily
and Grettir gave way before him, holding the tail of his horse with one hand
and with the other the stick with which he pricked it on. Odd stood in the
front by his horse, and one could not be sure that he was not pricking off
Atli's horse from his own. Grettir pretended not to notice it. The horses then
came near the river. Then Odd thrust with his pointed stick at Grettir and
caught him in the shoulder-blade which Grettir was turning towards him. He
struck pretty hard, and the flesh swelled up, but Grettir was little hurt. At
the same moment the horses reared. Grettir ducked beneath the flank of his horse
and drove his stick into Odd's side with such violence that three of his ribs
were broken and Odd fell into the pool with his horse and all the mares that
were tethered there by the bank. Some people swam out and rescued them. There
was great excitement about it. Kormak's men on one side and those of Bjarg on
the other seized their arms, but the men of Hrutafjord and Vatnsnes came
between them and parted them. They all went home in great wrath, but kept quiet
for a time. Atli said very little, but Grettir rather swaggered and said that
they should meet again if he had his way.
CHAPTER XXX
THORBJORN OXMAIN AND THE FRAY AT HRUTAFJARDARHALS
There was living in Thoroddsstad in Hrutafjord a man named Thorbjorn. He was
the son of Arnor Downy-Nose, the son of Thorodd who had settled in that side of
Hrutafjord which lies opposite to Bakki. Thorbjorn was of all men the
strongest, and was called Oxmain. He had a brother named Thorodd, called
Drapustuf. Their mother was Gerd, daughter of Bodvar from Bodvarsholar. Thorbjorn
was a great swashbuckler and kept a large troop of followers. He was noted for
being worse at getting servants than other men, and scarcely paid them any
wages. He was not a man easy to deal with. There was a kinsman of his, also
named Thorbjorn, called Slowcoach. He was a mariner, and the two namesakes were
in partnership together. He was always at Thoroddsstad and people did not think
he made Thorbjorn any better. He liked to talk scandal and spoke offensively of
several men.
There was a man named Thorir, a son of Thorkell, at Bordeyr. He first lived
at Melar in Hrutafjord, and had a daughter named Helga who married
Sleitu-Helgi. After the Fagrabrekka affair Thorir went South to Haukadal and
lived in Skard, selling the property at Melar to Thorhall the Winelander, the
son of Gamli. Thorhall's son Gamli married Rannveig, the daughter of Asmund
Longhair, Grettir's sister. They lived at that time in Melar and had a good
establishment. Thorir of Skard had two sons, Gunnar and Thorgeir, both
promising men, who took over the property from their father, but were always
with Thorbjorn Oxmain, and became very overbearing.
In the summer of that year Kormak and Thorgils rode with a kinsman of theirs
named Narfi South to Nordrardal on some business. Odd the Needy-Skald had
recovered from the hurts which he had received at the horse-fight and was of
the party. While they were south of the heath Grettir was journeying from his
home at Bjarg with two of Atli's men. They rode to Burfell and then across the
neck to Hrutafjord, reaching Melar in the evening, where they spent three
nights. Rannveig and Gamli gave Grettir a friendly reception and invited him to
stay, but he wanted to return home. Then Grettir learned of Kormak's company
having come from the South, and that they were staying at Tunga at night. He
prepared to leave Melar at once, and Gamli offered to send some of his men with
him. Gamli's brother Grim, who was very smart and active, and another rode with
Grettir. The party, five in number, came to Hrutafjardarhals to the west of
Burfell, where the great stone called Grettishaf lies; he struggled a long time
with that stone, trying to lift it, and delayed his journey thereby until
Kormak's party came up. Grettir went towards them and both alighted from their
horses. Grettir said it would be more seemly for free men to set to work with
all their might instead of fighting with sticks like tramps. Kormak told them
to take up the challenge like men and to do their best. So they went for each other.
Grettir was in front of his men and told them to see that nobody got behind
him. They fought for a time and both were hurt.
On the same day Thorbjorn Oxmain had ridden across the neck to Burfell, and
as he returned with Thorbjorn Slowcoach, Gunnar and Thorgeir, the sons of
Thorir, and Thorodd Drapustuf, he saw the fight going on. On coming up,
Thorbjorn called upon his men to go between them, but they were struggling so
furiously that nobody could get at them. Grettir was making a clean sweep of everything
round him. Before him were the sons of Thorir. He pushed them back and they
both fell over. This made them furious, and the consequence was that Gunnar
gave a blow to one of Atli's men which killed him. Thorbjorn on seeing that
ordered them to separate, saying that he would give his support to whichever
side obeyed him. By then two of Kormak's men had fallen. Grettir saw that it
would scarcely do if Thorbjorn joined the opposite side, so he gave up the
battle. All those who had fought were wounded. Grettir was much disgusted at
their being separated, but both parties rode home and were not reconciled on
this occasion.
Thorbjorn Slowcoach made great game of all this, and the relations between
the men of Bjarg and Thorbjorn Oxmain became strained in consequence, until at
last there was a regular feud, which however broke out later. No compensation
was offered to Atli for his man, and he went on as if he knew nothing of it.
Grettir stayed at Bjarg till the Tvi-month. It is not known that he and Kormak ever
met again; at least it is not mentioned anywhere.
CHAPTER XXXI
GRETTIR'S VAIN ENDEAVOUR TO PROVOKE BARDI
Bardi the son of Gudmund and his brothers rode home to Asbjarnarnes when
they left Grettir. They were the sons of Gudmund the son of Solmund. Solmund's
mother was Thorlaug, daughter of Saemund the Southerner, the foster-brother of
Ingimund the Old. Bardi was a man of great distinction. Soon he went to see his
foster-father Thorarin the Wise, who welcomed him and asked what help he had
been able to obtain, for Bardi's journey had been arranged beforehand by them
both. Bardi answered that he had engaged a man whose help he thought worth more
than that of two others. Thorarin was silent for a moment and then said:
"That must be Grettir the son of Asmund."
"The guess of the wise is truth," said Bardi. "That is the
very man, my foster-father."
Thorarin answered: "It is true that Grettir is beyond all other men of
whom there is now choice in the country; nor will he be easily subdued by arms
so long as he is sound. But great arrogance is in him now, and I have
misgivings as to his luck. It is important for you that all your men on your
expedition are not men of an evil star. It is enough if he does not fare with
you. He shall not come if my counsel is followed."
"I did not expect, my foster-father," said he, "that you
would deny me the man who is bravest in all that he undertakes. A man in such
straits as I seem to be in cannot provide against everything."
"It will be better for you," he replied, "to let me
provide."
So it came about that as Thorarin desired, word was not sent to Grettir.
Bardi went to the South and the battle of the Heath was fought.
Grettir was at Bjarg when he received the news that Bardi had started on his
expedition. He was very angry that word had not been sent to him, and said it
should not end there. He found out when they were expected back from the South,
and rode off to Thoreyjargnup, where he meant to lie in wait for Bardi and his
men as they rode back. He left the homestead behind and remained at the cliffs.
On that day rode Bardi back from the battle of the Heath from Tvidaegra; there
were six of them in his party, all sorely wounded. When they came to the
homestead Bardi said: "There is a man up there on the cliff, very tall and
armed. Whom do you take him for?"
They could not say who he was. Bardi said: "I believe it is Grettir the
son of Asmund. If it is, he will be wanting to meet us, for I expect he is
little pleased at not having been with us. It seems to me that we are not in a
very fit condition if he wants to annoy us. I will send home to Thoreyjargnup
for some men and not allow myself to be put out by his evil intentions."
They said that was the best thing he could do, and it was done. Bardi's
party rode on; Grettir watched where they were going and went there too. They
met and greeted each other. Grettir asked what the news was, and Bardi told him
without hesitation. Grettir asked who had been with them. Bardi answered that
his brothers and Eyjvolf his brother-inlaw had been with him.
"You have wiped out your disgrace," said Grettir. "Now the
next thing is for us two here to try which is the stronger."
"I have more urgent business," said Bardi, "than to fight
with you about nothing. I think I may be excused that now."
"It seems to me that you are afraid, Bardi; that is the reason why you
dare not fight me."
"Call it what you please. If you wish to bully, find some one else;
that seems to be what you want, for your insolence passes all bounds."
Grettir thought luck was against him. He hesitated now whether he should
attack any of them; it seemed rather rash as they were six and he was only one.
Then the men from Thoreyjargnup came up and joined Bardi's party, so he left
them and went back to his horse. Bardi and his men went on, and there was no
greeting between them when they parted. We are not told that any strife arose
between Bardi and Grettir after this.
Grettir once said that he would trust himself to fight with most men if
there were not more than three against him. Even with four he would not give
way without trying, but more he would not attempt, except in self-defence. Thus
he says in a verse:
"Oh skilled in war! When three are before me
I yet will endeavour to fight with them all.
But more than four I dare not encounter
in the clashing of arms, if the choice is with me."
On leaving Bardi, Grettir returned to Bjarg, and was much aggrieved at
finding nothing to try his strength on. He sought everywhere for something to
fight with.
CHAPTER XXII
THE SPOOK AT THORHALLSSTAD. GLAM THE SHEPHERD KILLED BY A FIEND. HIS GHOST
WALKS
There was a man named Thorhall living in Thorhallsstad in Forsaeludal, up
from Vatnsdal. He was the son of Grim, the son of Thorhall, the son of
Fridmund, who was the first settler in Forsaeludal. Thorhall's wife was named
Gudrun; they had a son named Grim and a daughter named Thurid who were just
grown up. Thorhall was fairly wealthy, especially in live-stock. His property
in cattle exceeded that of any other man. He was not a chief, but an honest
bondi nevertheless. He had great difficulty in getting a shepherd to suit him
because the place was haunted. He consulted many men of experience as to what
he should do, but nobody gave him any advice which was of any use. Thorhall had
good horses, and went every summer to the Thing. On one occasion at the
All-Thing he went to the booth of the Lawman Skapti the son of Thorodd, who was
a man of great knowledge and gave good counsel to those who consulted him.
There was a great difference between Thorodd the father and Skapti the son in
one respect. Thorodd possessed second sight, but was thought by some not to be
straight, whereas Skapti gave to every man the advice which he thought would
avail him, if he followed it exactly, and so earned the name of
Father-betterer.
So Thorhall went to Skapti's booth, where Skapti, knowing that he was a man
of wealth, received him graciously, and asked what the news was.
"I want some good counsel from you," said Thorhall.
"I am little fit to give you counsel," he replied; "but what
is it that you need?"
"It is this: I have great difficulty in keeping my shepherds. Some get
injured and others cannot finish their work. No one will come to me if he knows
what he has to expect."
Skapti answered: "There must be some evil spirit abroad if men are less
willing to tend your flocks than those of other men. Now since you have come to
me for counsel, I will get you a shepherd. His name is Glam, and he came from
Sylgsdale in Sweden last summer. He is a big strong man, but not to everybody's
mind."
Thorhall said that did not matter so long as he looked after the sheep
properly. Skapti said there was not much chance of getting another if this man
with all his strength and boldness should fail. Then Thorhall departed. This
happened towards the end of the Thing.
Two of Thorhall's horses were missing, and he went himself to look for them,
which made people think he was not much of a man. He went up under Sledaass and
south along the hill called Armannsfell. Then he saw a man coming down from
Godaskog bringing some brushwood with a horse. They met and Thorhall asked him
his name. He said it was Glam. He was a big man with an extraordinary
expression of countenance, large grey eyes and wolfgrey hair. Thorhall was a
little startled when he saw him, but soon found out that this was the man who
had been sent to him.
"What work can you do best?" he asked.
Glam said it would suit him very well to mind sheep in the winter.
"Will you mind my sheep?" Thorhall asked. "Skapti has given
you over to me."
"My service will only be of use to you if I am free to do as I
please," he said. "I am rather crossgrained when I am not well
pleased."
"That will not hurt me," said Thorhall. "I shall be glad if
you will come to me."
"I can do so," he said. "Are there any special
difficulties?"
"The place seems to be haunted."
"I am not afraid of ghosts. It will be the less dull."
"You will have to risk it," said Thorhall. "It will be best
to meet it with a bold face."
Terms were arranged and Glam was to come in the autumn. Then they parted.
Thorhall found his horses in the very place where he had just been looking for
them. He rode home and thanked Skapti for his service.
The summer passed. Thorhall heard nothing of his shepherd and no one knew
anything about him, but at the appointed time he appeared at Thorhallsstad.
Thorhall treated him kindly, but all the rest of the household disliked him,
especially the mistress. He commenced his work as shepherd, which gave him
little trouble. He had a loud hoarse voice. The beasts all flocked together
whenever he shouted at them. There was a church in the place, but Glam never
went to it. He abstained from mass, had no religion, and was stubborn and
surly. Every one hated him.
So the time passed till the eve of Yule-tide. Glam rose early and called for
his meal. The mistress said: "It is not proper for Christian men to eat on
this day, because to-morrow is the first day of Yule and it is our duty to fast
to-day."
"You have many superstitions," he said; "but I do not see
that much comes of them. I do not know that men are any better off than when
there was nothing of that kind. The ways of men seemed to me better when they
were called heathen. I want my food and no foolery."
"I am certain," she said, "that it will fare ill with you
to-day if you commit this sin."
Glam told her that she should bring his food, or that it would be the worse
for her. She did not dare to do otherwise than as he bade her. When he had
eaten he went out, his breath smelling abominably. It was very dark; there was
driving snow, the wind was howling and it became worse as the day advanced. The
shepherd's voice was heard in the early part of the day, but less later on.
Blizzards set in and a terrific storm in the evening. People went to mass and
so the time passed. In the evening Glam did not return. They talked about going
out to look for him, but the storm was so violent and the night so dark that no
one went. The night passed and still he had not returned; they waited till the
time for mass came. When it was full day some of the men set forth to search.
They found the animals scattered everywhere in the snow and injured by the
weather; some had strayed into the mountains. Then they came upon some well-marked
tracks up above in the valley. The stones and earth were torn up all about as
if there had been a violent tussle. On searching further they came upon Glam
lying on the ground a short distance off. He was dead; his body was as black as
Hel and swollen to the size of an ox. They were overcome with horror and their
hearts shuddered within them. Nevertheless they tried to carry him to the
church, but could not get him any further than the edge of a gully a short way
off. So they left him there and went home to report to the bondi what had
happened. He asked what could have caused Glam's death. They said they had
tracked him to a big place like a hole made by the bottom of a cask thrown down
and dragged along up below the mountains which were at the top of the valley,
and all along the track were great drops of blood. They concluded that the evil
spirit which had been about before must have killed Glam, but that he had
inflicted wounds upon it which were enough, for that spook was never heard of
again. On the second day of the festival they went out again to bring in Glam's
body to the church. They yoked oxen to him, but directly the downward incline
ceased and they came to level ground, they could not move him; so they went
home again and left him. On the third day they took a priest with them, but
after searching the whole day they failed to find him. The priest refused to go
again, and when he was not with them they found Glam. So they gave up the
attempt to bring him to the church and buried him where he was under a cairn of
stones.
It was not long before men became aware that Glam was not easy in his grave.
Many men suffered severe injuries; some who saw him were struck senseless and
some lost their wits. Soon after the festival was over, men began to think they
saw him about their houses. The panic was great and many left the
neighbourhood. Next he began to ride on the house-tops by night, and nearly
broke them to pieces. Almost night and day he walked, and people would scarcely
venture up the valley, however pressing their business. The district was in a
grievous condition.
CHAPTER XXXIII
DOINGS OF GLAM'S GHOST. AWFUL CONDITION OF VATNSDAL
In the spring Thorhall procured servants and built a house on his lands. As
the days lengthened out the apparitions became less, until at midsummer a ship
sailed up the Hunavatn in which was a man named Thorgaut. He was a foreigner,
very tall and powerful; he had the strength of two men. He was travelling on
his own account, unattached, and being without money was looking out for
employment. Thorhall rode to the ship, saw him and asked if he would take
service with him. Thorgaut said he would indeed, and that there would be no
difficulties.
"You must be prepared," said Thorhall, "for work which would
not be fitting for a weak-minded person, because of the apparitions which have
been there lately. I will not deceive you about it."
"I shall not give myself up as lost for the ghostlings," he said.
"Before I am scared some others will not be easy. I shall not change my
quarters on that account."
The terms were easily arranged and Thorgaut was engaged for the sheep during
the winter. When the summer had passed away he took over charge of them, and
was on good terms with everybody. Glam continued his rides on the roofs. Thorgaut
thought it very amusing and said the thrall must come nearer if he wished to
frighten him. Thorhall advised him not to say too much, and said it would be
better if they did not come into conflict.
Thorgaut said: "Surely all the spirit has gone out of you. I shall not
fall dead in the twilight for stories of that sort."
Yule was approaching. On the eve the shepherd went out with his sheep. The
mistress said: "Now I hope that our former experiences will not be
repeated."
"Have no fear for that, mistress," he said. "There will be
something worth telling of if I come not back."
Then he went out to his sheep. The weather was rather cold and there was a
heavy snowstorm. Thorgaut usually returned when it was getting dark, but this
time he did not come. The people went to church as usual, but they thought
matters looked very much as they did on the last occasion. The bondi wanted
them to go out and search for the shepherd, but the churchgoers cried off, and
said they were not going to trust themselves into the power of trolls in the
night; the bondi would not venture out and there was no search. On Yule day
after their meal they went out to look for the shepherd, and first went to
Glam's cairn, feeling sure that the shepherd's disappearance must be due to
him. On approaching the cairn they saw an awful sight; there was the shepherd,
his neck broken, and every bone in his body torn from its place. They carried
him to the church and no one was molested by Thorgaut.
Glam became more rampageous than ever. He was so riotous that at last
everybody fled from Thorhallsstad, excepting the bondi and his wife.
Thorhall's cowherd had been a long time in his service and he had become
attached to him; for this reason and because he was a careful herdsman he did
not want to part with him. The man was very old and thought it would be very
troublesome to have to leave; he saw, too, that everything the bondi possessed
would be ruined if he did not stay to look-after them. One morning after midwinter
the mistress went to the cow-house to milk the cows as usual. It was then full
day, for no one would venture out of doors till then, except the cowherd, who
went directly it was light. She heard a great crash in the cowhouse and
tremendous bellowing. She rushed in, shouting that something awful, she knew
not what, was going on in the cowhouse. The bondi went out and found the cattle
all goring each other. It seemed not canny there, so he went into the shed and
there saw the cowherd lying on his back with his head in one stall and his feet
in the other. He went up and felt him, but saw at once that he was dead with
his back broken. It had been broken over the flat stone which separated the two
stalls. Evidently it was not safe to remain any longer on his estate, so he
fled with everything that he could carry away. All the live-stock which he left
behind was killed by Glam. After that Glam went right up the valley and raided
every farm as far as Tunga, while Thorhall stayed with his friends during the
rest of the winter. No one could venture up the valley with a horse or a dog,
for it was killed at once. As the spring went on and the sun rose higher in the
sky the spook diminished somewhat, and Thorhall wanted to return to his land,
but found it not easy to get servants. Nevertheless, he went and took up his
abode at Thorhallsstad. Directly the autumn set in, everything began again, and
the disturbances increased. The person most attacked was the bondi's daughter,
who at last died of it. Many things were tried but without success. It seemed
likely that the whole of Vatnsdal would be devastated unless help could be
found.
CHAPTER XXXIV
GRETTIR VISITS HIS UNCLE JOKULL
We have now to return to Grettir, who was at home in Bjarg during the autumn
which followed his meeting with Warrior-Bardi at Thoreyjargnup. When the winter
was approaching, he rode North across the neck to Vididal and stayed at
Audunarstad. He and Audun made friends again; Grettir gave him a valuable
battle-axe and they agreed to hold together in friendship. Audun had long lived
there, and had many connections. He had a son named Egill, who married Ulfheid
the daughter of Eyjolf, the son of Gudmund; their son Eyjolf, who was killed at
the All-Thing, was the father of Orin the chaplain of Bishop Thorlak.
Grettir rode to the North to Vatnsdal and went on a visit to Tunga, where
dwelt his mother's brother, Jokull the son of Bard, a big strong man and
exceedingly haughty. He was a mariner, very cantankerous, but a person of much
consideration. He welcomed Grettir, who stayed three nights with him. Nothing
was talked about but Glam's walking, and Grettir inquired minutely about all
the particulars. Jokull told him that no more was said than had really
happened.
"Why, do you want to go there?" he asked.
Grettir said that it was so. Jokull told him not to do it.
"It would be a most hazardous undertaking," he said. "Your
kinsmen incur a great risk with you as you are. There does not seem to be one
of the younger men who is your equal. It is ill dealing with such a one as
Glam. Much better fight with human men than with goblins of that sort."
Grettir said he had a mind to go to Thorhallsstad and see how things were.
Jokull said: "I see there is no use in dissuading you. The saying is true
that Luck is one thing, brave deeds another."
"Woe stands before the door of one but enters that of another,"
answered Grettir. "I am thinking how it may fare with you yourself before
all is done."
"It may be," said Jokull, "that we both see what is before
us, and yet we may not alter it."
Then they parted, neither of them well pleased with the other's prophetic
saying.
CHAPTER XXXV
THE FIGHT WITH GLAM'S GHOST
Grettir rode to Thorhallsstad where he was welcomed by the bondi. He asked
Grettir whither he was bound, and Grettir said he wished to spend the night
there if the bondi permitted. Thorhall said he would indeed be thankful to him
for staying there.
"Few," he said, "think it a gain to stay here for any time.
You must have heard tell of the trouble that is here, and I do not want you to
be inconvenienced on my account. Even if you escape unhurt yourself, I know for
certain that you will lose your horse, for no one can keep his beast in safety
who comes here."
Grettir said there were plenty more horses to be had if anything happened to
this one.
Thorhall was delighted at Grettir's wishing to remain, and received him with
both hands. Grettir's horse was placed securely under lock and key and they
both went to bed. The night passed without Glam showing himself.
"Your being here has already done some good," said Thorhall.
"Glam has always been in the habit of riding on the roof or breaking open
the doors every night, as you can see from the marks."
"Then," Grettir said, "either he will not keep quiet much
longer, or he will remain so more than one night. I will stay another night and
see what happens."
Then they went to Grettir's horse and found it had not been touched. The
bondi thought that all pointed to the same thing. Grettir stayed a second night
and again the thrall did not appear. The bondi became hopeful and went to see
the horse. There he found the stable broken open, the horse dragged outside and
every bone in his body broken. Thorhall told Grettir what had occurred and
advised him to look to himself, for he was a dead man if he waited for Glam.
Grettir answered: "I must not have less for my horse than a sight of
the thrall."
The bondi said there was no pleasure to be had from seeing him: "He is
not like any man. I count every hour a gain that you are here."
The day passed, and when the hour came for going to bed Grettir said he
would not take off his clothes, and lay down on a seat opposite to Thorkell's
sleeping apartment. He had a shaggy cloak covering him with one end of it
fastened under his feet and the other drawn over his head so that he could see
through the neck-hole. He set his feet against a strong bench which was in
front of him. The frame-work of the outer door had been all broken away and
some bits of wood had been rigged up roughly in its place. The partition which
had once divided the hall from the entrance passage was all broken, both above
the cross-beam and below, and all the bedding had been upset. The place looked
rather desolate. There was a light burning in the hall by night.
When about a third part of the night had passed Grettir heard a loud noise.
Something was going up on to the building, riding above the hall and kicking
with its heels until the timbers cracked again. This went on for some time, and
then it came down towards the door. The door opened and Grettir saw the thrall
stretching in an enormously big and ugly head. Glam moved slowly in, and on
passing the door stood upright, reaching to the roof. He turned to the hall,
resting his arms on the cross-beam and peering along the hall. The bondi
uttered no sound, having heard quite enough of what had gone on outside.
Grettir lay quite still and did not move. Glam saw a heap of something in the
seat, came farther into the hall and seized the cloak tightly with his hand.
Grettir pressed his foot against the plank and the cloak held firm. Glam tugged
at it again still more violently, but it did not give way. A third time be
pulled, this time with both hands and with such force that he pulled Grettir up
out of the seat, and between them the cloak was torn in two. Glam looked at the
bit which he held in his hand and wondered much who could pull like that
against him. Suddenly Grettir sprang under his arms, seized him round the waist
and squeezed his back with all his might, intending in that way to bring him
down, but the thrall wrenched his arms till he staggered from the violence.
Then Grettir fell back to another bench. The benches flew about and everything
was shattered around them. Glam wanted to get out, but Grettir tried to prevent
him by stemming his foot against anything he could find. Nevertheless Glam
succeeded in getting him outside the hall. Then a terrific struggle began, the
thrall trying to drag him out of the house, and Grettir saw that however hard
he was to deal with in the house, he would be worse outside, so he strove with
all his might to keep him from getting out. Then Glam made a desperate effort
and gripped Grettir tightly towards him, forcing him to the porch. Grettir saw
that he could not put up any resistance, and with a sudden movement he dashed
into the thrall's arms and set both his feet against a stone which was fastened
in the ground at the door. For that Glam was not prepared, since he had been
tugging to drag Grettir towards him; he reeled backwards and tumbled bind-
foremost out of the door, tearing away the lintel with his shoulder and
shattering the roof, the rafters and the frozen thatch. Head over heels he fell
out of the house and Grettir fell on top of him. The moon was shining very
brightly outside, with light clouds passing over it and hiding it now and
again. At the moment when Glam fell the moon shone forth, and Glam turned his
eyes up towards it. Grettir himself has related that that sight was the only
one which ever made him tremble. What with fatigue and all else that he had
endured, when he saw the horrible rolling of Glam's eyes his heart sank so
utterly that he had not strength to draw his sword, but lay there wellnigh
betwixt life and death. Glam possessed more malignant power than most fiends,
for he now spoke in this wise:
"You have expended much energy, Grettir, in your search for me. Nor is
that to be wondered at, if you should have little joy thereof. And now I tell
you that you shall possess only half the strength and firmness of heart that
were decreed to you if you had not striven with me. The might which was yours
till now I am not able to take away, but it is in my power to ordain that never
shall you grow stronger than you are now. Nevertheless your might is
sufficient, as many shall find to their cost. Hitherto you have earned fame
through your deeds, but henceforward there shall fall upon you exile and
battle; your deeds shall turn to evil and your guardian-spirit shall forsake
you. You will be outlawed and your lot shall be to dwell ever alone. And this I
lay upon you, that these eyes of mine shall be ever before your vision. You
will find it hard to live alone, and at last it shall drag you to death."
When the thrall had spoken the faintness which had come over Grettir left
him. He drew his short sword, cut off Glam's head and laid it between his
thighs. Then the bondi came out, having put on his clothes while Glam was
speaking, but he did not venture to come near until he was dead. Thorhall
praised God and thanked Grettir warmly for having laid this unclean spirit.
Then they set to work and burned Glam to cold cinders, bound the ashes in a
skin and buried them in a place far away from the haunts of man or beast. Then
they went home, the day having nearly broken. Grettir was very stiff and lay
down to rest. Thorhall sent for some men from the next farms and let them know
how things had fared. They all realised the importance of Grettir's deed when
they heard of it; all agreed that in the whole country side for strength and
courage and enterprise there was not the equal of Grettir the son of Asmund.
Thorhall bade a kindly farewell to Grettir and dismissed him with a present
of a fine horse and proper clothes, for all that he had been wearing were torn
to pieces. They parted in friendship. Grettir rode to Ass in Vatnsdal and was
welcomed by Thorvald, who asked him all about his encounter with Glam. Grettir
told him everything and said that never had his strength been put to trial as
it had been in their long struggle. Thorvald told him to conduct himself
discreetly; if he did so he might prosper, but otherwise he would surely come
to disaster. Grettir said that his temper had not improved, that he had even
less discretion than before, and was more impatient of being crossed. In one
thing a great change had come over him; he had become so frightened of the dark
that he dared not go anywhere alone at night. Apparitions of every kind came
before him. It has since passed into an expression, and men speak of
"Glam's eyes" or "Glam visions" when things appear
otherwise than as they are.
Having accomplished his undertaking Grettir rode back to Bjarg and spent the
winter at home.
CHAPTER XXXVI
THORBJORN SLOWCOACH AT HOME
Thorbjorn Oxmain gave a great feast in the autumn at which many were
assembled, whilst Grettir was in the North in Vatnsdal. Thorbjorn Slowcoach was
there and many things were talked about. The Hrutafjord people inquired about
Grettir's adventure on the ridge in the summer. Thorbjorn Oxmain praised
Grettir's conduct, and said that Kormak would have had the worst of it if no
one had come to part them. Then Thorbjorn Slowcoach said: "What I saw of
Grettir's fighting was not famous; and he seemed inclined to shirk when we came
up. He was very ready to leave off, nor did I see him make any attempt to
avenge the death of Atli's man. I do not believe there is much heart in him,
except when he has a sufficient force behind him."
Thorbjorn went on jeering at him in this way. Many of the others had
something to say about it, and they thought that Grettir would not leave it to
rest if he heard what Thorbjorn was saying. Nothing more happened at the
festivities; they all went home, and there was a good deal of ill-will between
them all that winter, though no one took any action. Nothing more happened that
winter.
CHAPTER XXXVI
GRETTIR SAILS FOR NORWAY AND KILLS THORBJORN SLOWCOACH
Early in the spring, before the meeting of the Thing, there arrived a ship
from Norway. There was much news to tell, above all of the change of
government. Olaf the son of Harald was now king, having driven away jarl Sveinn
from the country in the spring which followed the battle of Nesjar. Many
noteworthy things were told of King Olaf. Men said that he took into favour all
men who were skilled in any way and made them his followers. This pleased many
of the younger men in Iceland and made them all want to leave home. When
Grettir heard of it he longed to go too, deeming that he merited the king's favour
quite as much as any of the others. A ship came up to Gasar in Eyjafjord;
Grettir engaged a passage in her and prepared to go abroad. He had not much
outfit as yet.
Asmund was now becoming very infirm and scarcely left his bed. He and Asdis
had a young son named Illugi, a youth of much promise. Atli had taken over all
the management of the farm and the goods, and things went much better, for he
was both obliging and provident.
Grettir embarked on his ship. Thorbjorn Slowcoach had arranged to travel in
the same vessel without knowing that Grettir would be in her. Some of his
friends tried to dissuade him from travelling in Grettir's company, but he
insisted upon going. He was rather a long time over his preparations and did
not get to Gasar before the ship was ready to sail. Before he left home Asmund
Longhair was taken ill and was quite confined to his bed. Thorbjorn Slowcoach
arrived on the beach late in the day, when the men were going on board and were
washing their hands outside near their booths. When he rode up to the rows of
booths they greeted him and asked what news there was.
"I have nothing to tell," he said, "except that the valorous
Asmund at Bjarg is now dead."
Some of them said that a worthy bondi had left the world and asked how it happened.
"A poor lot befell his Valour," he replied. "He was
suffocated by the smoke from the hearth, like a dog. There is no great loss in
him, for he was in his dotage."
"You talk strangely about such a man as he was," they said.
"Grettir would not be much pleased if he heard you."
"I can endure Grettir's wrath," he said. "He must bear his
axe higher than he did at Hrutafjardarhals if he wishes to frighten me."
Grettir heard every word that Thorbjorn said, but took no notice as long as
he was speaking. When he had finished Grettir said:
"I prophesy, Slowcoach, that you will not die of the smoke from the
hearth, and yet perhaps you will not die of old age either. It is strange
conduct to say shameful things of innocent men."
Thorbjorn said: "I have nothing to unsay. I never thought you would
fire up like this on the day when we got you out of the hands of the men of Mel
who were belabouring you like an ox's head."
Then Grettir spoke a verse:
"Too long is the tongue of the spanner of bows.
Full often he suffers the vengeance due.
Slowcoach! I tell thee that many a man
has paid for less shameful speech with his life."
Thorbjorn said his life was neither more nor less in danger than it was
before.
"My prophecies are not generally long-lived," said Grettir,
"nor shall this one be. Defend yourself if you will; you never will have
better occasion for it than now."
Grettir then struck at him. He tried to parry the blow with his arm, but it
struck him above the wrist and glanced off on to his neck so that his head flew
off. The sailors declared it was a splendid stroke, and that such were the men
for the king. No one would grieve, they said, because a man so quarrelsome and
scurrilous as Thorbjorn had been killed.
Soon after this they got under way and towards the end of the summer reached
the south coast of Norway, about Hordland, where they learned that King Olaf
was in the North at Thrandheim. Grettir took a passage thither with some
traders intending to seek audience of the king.
CHAPTER XXXVIII
GRETTIR FETCHES FIRE -- THE SONS OF THORIR ARE BURNT
There was a man named Thorir dwelling in Gard in Adaldal. He was a son of
Skeggi Bodolfsson, who had settled in Kelduhverfi, on lands extending right up to
Keldunes, and had married Helga the daughter of Thorgeir at Fiskilaek. Thorir
was a great chief, and a mariner. He had two sons whose names were Thorgeir and
Skeggi, both men of promise, and pretty well grown up at that time. Thorir had
been in Norway in the summer in which Olaf came East from England, and had won
great favour with the king as well as with Bishop Sigurd. In token of this it
is related that Thorir asked the bishop to consecrate a large sea-going ship he
had built in the forest, and the bishop did so. Later he came out to Iceland
and had his ship broken up because he was tired of seafaring. He set up the
figures from her head and stem over his doors, where they long remained
foretelling the weather, one howling for a south, the other for a north wind.
When Thorir heard that Olaf had become sole ruler of Norway he thought he
might expect favour from him, so he dispatched his sons to Norway to wait upon
the king, hoping that they would be received into his service. They reached the
south coast late in the autumn and engaged a rowing vessel to take them up the
coast to the North, intending to go to the king. They reached a port to the
south of Stad, where they put in for a few days. They were well provided with
food and drink, and did not go out much because of the bad weather.
Grettir also sailed to the North along the coast, and as the winter was just
beginning he often fell in with dirty weather. When they reached the
neighbourhood of Stad the weather became worse, and at last one evening they
were so exhausted with the snow and frost that they were compelled to put in
and lie under a bank where they found shelter for their goods and belongings.
The men were very much distressed at not being able to procure any fire; their
safety and their lives seemed almost to depend upon their getting some. They
lay there in a pitiful condition all the evening, and as night came on they saw
a large fire on the other side of the channel which they were in. When
Grettir's companions saw the fire they began talking and saying that he who
could get some of it would be a happy man. They hesitated for some time whether
they should put out, but all agreed that it would be too dangerous. Then they
had a good deal of talk about whether there was any man living doughty enough
to get the fire. Grettir kept very quiet, but said that there probably had been
men who would not have let themselves be baulked. The men said that they were
none the better for what had been if there were none now.
"But won't you venture, Grettir? The people of Iceland all talk so much
about your prowess, and you know very well what we want."
Grettir said: "It does not seem to me such a great thing to get the
fire, but I do not know whether you will reward it any better than he requires
who does it."
"Why," they said, "should you take us to be men of so little
honour that we shall not reward you well?"
"Well," said Grettir, "if you really think it so necessary I
will try it; but my heart tells me that no good will come to me
therefrom."
They said it would not be so, and told him that he should have their thanks.
Then Grettir threw off his clothes and got ready to go into the water. He
went in a cloak and breeches of coarse stuff. He tucked up the cloak, tied a
cord of bast round his waist, and took a barrel with him. Then he jumped
overboard, swam across the channel and reached the land on the other side.
There he saw a house standing and heard sounds of talking and merriment issuing
from it. So he went towards the house.
We have now to tell of the people who were in the house. They were the sons
of Thorir who have been mentioned. They had been there some days waiting for a
change of weather and for a wind to carry them to the North. There were twelve
of them and they were all sitting and drinking. They had made fast in the inner
harbour where there was a place of shelter set up for men who were travelling
about the country, and they had carried in a quantity of straw. There was a
huge fire on the ground. Grettir rushed into the house, not knowing who was
there. His cloak had all frozen directly he landed, and he was a portentous
sight to behold; he looked like a troll. The people inside were much startled,
thinking it was a fiend. They struck at him with anything they could get, and a
tremendous uproar there was. Grettir pushed them back with his arms. Some of
them struck at him with firebrands, and the fire spread all through the house.
He got away with his fire and returned to his companions, who were loud in
praise of his skill and daring, and said there was no one like him. The night
passed and they were happy now that they had fire.
On the next morning the weather was fine. They all woke early and made ready
to continue their journey. It was proposed that they should go and find out who
the people were who had had the fire, so they cast off and sailed across the
channel. They found no house there, nothing but a heap of ashes and a good many
bones of men amongst them. Evidently the house with all who were in it had been
burned. They asked whether Grettir had done it, and declared it was an
abominable deed. Grettir said that what he expected had come to pass, and that
he was ill rewarded for getting the fire for them. He said it was thankless
work to help such miserable beings as they were. He suffered much annoyance in
consequence, for wherever the traders went they told that Grettir had burned
the men in the house. Soon it became known that it was the sons of Thorir of
Gard and their followers who had been burned. The traders refused to have Grettir
on board their ship any longer and drove him away. He was so abhorred that
scarcely any one would do him a service. His case seemed hopeless, and his only
desire was at any cost to appear before the king. So he went North to
Thrandheim where the king was, and had heard the whole story before Grettir
came, for many had been busy in slandering him. Grettir waited several days in
the town before he was able to appear before the king.
CHAPTER XXXIX
GRETTIR APPEARS BEFORE THE KING AND FAILS TO UNDERGO THE ORDEAL
One day when the king was sitting in judgment Grettir came before him and
saluted him respectfully. The king looked at him and said:
"Are you Grettir the Strong?"
"So I have been called," he replied, "and I have some here in
the hope of obtaining deliverance from the slanders which are being spread
about me, and to say that I did not do this deed."
The king said: "You are worthy enough; but I know not what fortune you
will have in defending yourself. It is quite possible that you did not intend to
burn the men in the house."
Grettir said that he was most anxious to prove his innocence if the king
would permit him. Then the king bade him relate faithfully all that had
happened. Grettir told him everything exactly as it was, and declared that they
were all alive when he escaped with his fire; he was ready to undergo any
ordeal which the king considered that the law required.
King Olaf said: "I decree that you shall bear iron, if your fate so
wills it."
Grettir was quite content with that, and began his fast for the ordeal. When
the day for the ceremony arrived the king and the bishop went to the church
together with a multitude of people who came out of curiosity to see a man so
much talked about as Grettir. At last Grettir himself was led to the church.
When he entered many looked at him and remarked that he excelled most men in
strength and stature. As he passed down the aisle there started up a very
ill-favoured, overgrown boy and cried to him:
"Wondrous are now the ways in a land where men should call themselves
Christians, when evildoers and robbers and thieves walk in peace to purge
themselves. What should a wicked man find better to do than to preserve his
life so long as he may? Here is now a malefactor convicted of guilt, one who
has burnt innocent men in their houses, and yet is allowed to undergo
purgation. Such a thing is most unrighteous."
Then he went at Grettir, pointing at him with his finger, making grimaces
and calling him son of a sea-ogress, with many other bad names. Then Grettir
lost his temper and his self-control. He raised his hand and gave him a box on
the ear so that he fell senseless, and some thought he was dead. No one seemed
to know whence the boy had come nor what became of him afterwards, but it was
generally believed that he was some unclean spirit sent forth for the
destruction of Grettir.
There arose an uproar in the church; people told the king that the man who
had come to purge himself was fighting with those around him. King Olaf came
forward into the church to see what was going on, and said:
"You are a man of ill luck, Grettir. All was prepared for the ordeal,
but it cannot take place now. It is not possible to contend against your
ill-fortune."
Grettir said: "I expected, oh king, more honour from you for the sake
of my family than I now seem likely to obtain."
Then he told again the story as he had done before of what had taken place
with the men. "Gladly," he said, "would I enter your service;
there is many a man with you who is not my better as a warrior."
"I know," said the king, "that few are your equals in
strength and courage, but your luck is too bad for you to remain with me. You
have my leave to depart in peace whithersoever you will for the winter, and
then in the summer you may return to Iceland, where you are destined to lay
your bones."
"First I should like to clear myself of the charge of burning, if I
may," said Grettir; "for I did not do it intentionally."
"Very likely it is so," said the king; "but since the
purgation has come to naught through your impatience you cannot clear yourself
further than you have done. Impetuosity always leads to evil. If ever a man was
doomed to misfortune you are."
After that Grettir remained for a time in the town, but he got nothing more
out of Olaf. Then he went to the South, intending after that to go East to
Tunsberg to find his brother Thorsteinn Dromund. Nothing is told of his journey
till he came to Jadar.
CHAPTER XL
ADVENTURE WITH THE BERSERK SNAEKOLL
At Yule Grettir came to a bondi named Einar, a man of wealth who had a wife
and a marriageable daughter named Gyrid. She was a beautiful maiden and was
considered an excellent match. Einar invited Grettir to stay over Yule, and he
accepted.
It was no uncommon thing throughout Norway that robbers and other ruffians
came down from the forest and challenged men to fight for their women, or
carried off their property with violence if there was not sufficient force in
the house to protect them. One day at Yule-tide there came a whole party of
these miscreants to Einar's house. Their leader was a great berserk named
Snaekoll. He challenged Einar to hand over his daughter to him or else to
defend her, if he felt himself man enough to do so. Now the bondi was no longer
young, and no fighter. He felt that he was in a great difficulty, and asked
Grettir privately what help he would give him, seeing that he was held to be so
famous a man. Grettir advised him to consent only to what was not
dishonourable. The berserk was sitting on his horse wearing his helmet, the
chin-piece of which was not fastened. He held before him a shield bound with
iron and looked terribly threatening. He said to the bondi:
"You had better choose quickly: either one thing or the other. What
does that big fellow standing beside you say? Would he not like to play with me
himself?"
"One of us is as good as the other," said Grettir, "neither
of us is very active."
"All the more afraid will you be to fight with me if I get angry."
"That will be seen when it is tried," said Grettir.
The berserk thought they were trying to get off by talking. He began to howl
and to bite the rim of his shield. He held the shield up to his mouth and
scowled over its upper edge like a madman. Grettir stepped quickly across the
ground, and when he got even with the berserk's horse he kicked the shield with
his foot from below with such force that it struck his mouth, breaking the
upper jaw, and the lower jaw fell down on to his chest. With the same movement
he seized the viking's helmet with his left hand and dragged him from his
horse, while with his right hand he raised his axe and cut off the berserk's
head. Snaekoll's followers when they saw what had happened fled, every man of
them. Grettir did not care to pursue them for he saw that there was no heart in
them. The bondi thanked him for what he had done, as did many other men, for
the quickness and boldness of his deed had impressed them much. Grettir stayed
there for Yule and was well taken care of till he left, when the bondi
dismissed him handsomely. Then Grettir went East to Tunsberg to visit his
brother Thorsteinn, who received him joyfully and asked him about his
adventures. Grettir told him how he had killed the berserk, and composed a
verse :
"The warrior's shield by my foot propelled
in conflict came with Snaekoll's mouth.
His nether jaw hung down on his chest,
wide gaped his mouth from the iron ring."
"You would be very handy at many things," said Thorsteinn,
"if misfortune did not follow you."
"Men will tell of deeds that are done," said Grettir.
CHAPTER XLI
THORSTEINN DROMUND'S ARMS
Grettir stayed with Thorsteinn for the rest of the winter and on into the
spring. One morning when Thorsteinn and Grettir were above in their
sleepingroom Grettir put out his arm from the bed-clothes and Thorsteinn
noticed it when he awoke. Soon after Grettir woke too, and Thorsteinn said:
"I have been looking at your arms, kinsman, and think it is not wonderful
that your blows fall heavily upon some. Never have I seen any man's arms that
were like yours."
"You may know," said Grettir, "that I should not have done
the deeds I have if I had not been very mighty."
"Yet methinks it would be of advantage," said Thorsteinn, "if
your arm were more slender and your fortune better."
"True," said Grettir, "is the saying that no man shapes his
own fortune. Let me see your arm."
Thorsteinn showed it to him. He was a tall lanky man. Grettir smiled and
said:
"There is no need to look long at that; all your ribs are run together.
I never saw such a pair of tongs as you carry about! Why, you are scarcely as
strong as a woman!"
"It may be so," said Thorsteinn, "and yet you may know that
these thin arms of mine and no others will avenge you some day; -- if you are
avenged."
"Who shall know how it will be when the end comes?" said Grettir;
"but that seems unlikely."
No more is related of their conversation. The spring came and Grettir took a
ship for Iceland in the summer. The brothers parted with friendship and never
saw one another again.
CHAPTER XLII
DEATH OF ASMUND LONGHAIR
We have now to return to where we broke off before. Thorbjorn Oxmain when he
heard of the death of Thorbjorn Slowcoach flew into a violent passion and said
he wished that more men might deal blows in other people's houses. Asmund
Longhair lay sick for some time in the summer. When he thought his end was nigh
he called his kinsmen round him and said his will was that Atli should take
over all the property after his day. "I fear," he said, "that
the wicked will scarce leave you in peace. And I wish all my kinsmen to support
him to the best of their power. Of Grettir I can say nothing, for his condition
seems to me like a rolling wheel. Strong though he is, I fear he will have more
dealing with trouble than with kinsmen's support. And Illugi, though young now,
shall become a man of valiant deeds if he remain unscathed."
When Asmund had settled everything with his sons according to his wish his
sickness grew upon him. He died soon after and was buried at Bjarg, where he
had had a church built. All felt his loss deeply.
Atli became a great bondi and kept a large establishment. He was a great
dealer in household provisions. Towards the end of the summer he went to
Snaefellsnes to get dried fish. He drove several horses with him and rode from home
to Melar in Hrutafjord to his brother-in-law, Gamli. Then Grim, the son of
Thorhall, Gamli's brother, made ready to accompany him along with another man.
They rode West by way of Haukadalsskard and the road which leads out to the
Ness, where they bought much fish and carried it away-on seven horses; when all
was ready they turned homewards.
CHAPTER XLIII
THE SONS OF THORIR OF SKARD ARE SLAIN BY ATLI AND GRIM
Thorbjorn Oxmain heard of Atli and Grim having left home just when Gunnar
and Thorgeir, the sons of Thorir of Skard, were with him. Thorbjorn was jealous
of Atli's popularity and egged on the two brothers, the sons of Thorir, to lie
in wait for him as he returned from Snaefellsnes. They rode home to Skard and
waited there for Atli returning with his loads. They could see the party from
their house as they passed Skard, and made ready quickly to pursue them with
their servants. Atli on seeing them ordered his horses to be unloaded.
"Perhaps," he said, "they want to offer me compensation for
my man whom Gunnar slew last summer. We will not be the first to attack, but if
they begin fighting us we will defend ourselves."
Then they came up and at once sprang off their horses. Atli greeted them and
asked what news there was, and whether Gunnar desired to offer him some
compensation for his servant. Gunnar answered:
"You men of Bjarg, you deserve something else than that I should pay
compensation for him with my goods. Thorbjorn whom Grettir slew is worth a
higher atonement than he."
"I have not to answer for that," said Atli, "nor are you the
representative of Thorbjorn."
Gunnar said it would have to be so nevertheless. "And now," he
cried, "let us go for them and profit by Grettir being away."
There were eight of them, and they set upon Atli's six. Atli led on his men
and drew the sword Jokulsnaut which Grettir had given him. Thorgeir cried:
"Good men are alike in many things. High did Grettir bear his sword last
summer on Hrutafjardarhals."
Atli answered: "He is more accustomed to deeds of strength than I
am."
Then they fought. Gunnar made a resolute attack on Atli, and fought
fiercely. After they had battled for a time Atli said:
"There is nothing to be gained by each of us killing the other's
followers. The simplest course would be for us to play together, for I have
never fought with weapons before."
Gunnar, however, would not have it. Atli bade his servants look to the
packs, and he would see what the others would do. He made such a vigorous
onslaught that Gunnar's men fell back, and he killed two of them. Then he
turned upon Gunnar himself and struck a blow that severed his shield right
across below the handle, and the sword struck his leg below the knee. Then with
another rapid blow he killed him.
In the meantime Grim, the son of Thorhall, was engaging Thorgeir, and a long
tussle there was, both of them being men of great valour. When Thorgeir saw his
brother Gunnar fall he wanted to get away, but Grim pressed upon him and
pursued him until at last his foot tripped and he fell forward. Then Grim
struck him with an axe between the shoulders, inflicting a deep wound. To the
three followers who were left they gave quarter. Then they bound up their
wounds, reloaded the packs on to the horses and went home, giving information
of the battle. Atli stayed at home with a strong guard of men that autumn.
Thorbjorn Oxmain was not at all pleased, but could do nothing, because Atli was
very wary. Grim was with him for the winter, and his brother-in-law Gamli.
Another brother-in-law, Glum the son of Ospak from Eyr in Bitra, was with them
too. They had a goodly array of men settled at Bjarg, and there was much
merriment there during the winter.
CHAPTER XLIV
SETTLEMENT OF THE FEUD AT THE HUNAVATN THING
Thorbfron Oxmain took up the suit arising from the death of Thorir's sons.
He prepared his case against Grim and Atli, and they prepared their defence on
the grounds that the brothers had attacked them wrongfully and were, therefore,
"ohelgir." The case was brought before the Hunavatn Thing and both sides
appeared in force. Atli had many connections , and was, therefore, strongly
supported. Then those who were friends of both came forward and tried to effect
a reconciliation; they urged that Atli was a man of good position and
peacefully disposed, though fearless enough when driven into a strait.
Thorbjorn felt that no other honourable course was open to him but to agree to
a reconciliation. Atli made it a condition that there should be no sentence of
banishment either from the district or the country. Then men were appointed to
arbitrate: Thorvald Asgeirsson on behalf of Atli, and Solvi the Proud on behalf
of Tborbjorn. This Solvi was a son of Asbrand, the son of Thorbrand, the son of
Harald Ring who had settled in Vatnsnes, taking land as far as Ambattara to the
West, and to the East up to the Thvera and across to Bjargaoss and the whole
side of Bjorg as far as the sea. Solvi was a person of much display, but a man
of sense, and therefore Thorbjorn chose him as his arbitrator.
The decree of the arbitrators was that half penalties should be paid for
Thorir's sons and half should be remitted on account of the wrongful attack
which they made and their designs on Atli's life. The slaying of Atli's man at
Hrutafjardarhals should be set off against the two of theirs who had been
killed. Grim the son of Thorhall was banished from his district and the
penalties were to be paid by Atli. Atli was satisfied with this award, but
Thorbjorn was not; they parted nominally reconciled, but Thorbjorn let drop
some words to the effect that it was not over yet if all happened as he
desired.
Atli rode home from the Thing after thanking Thorvald for his assistance.
Grim the son of Thorhall betook himself to the South to Borgarfjord and dwelt
at Gilsbakki, where he was known as a worthy bondi.
CHAPTER XLV
ATLI MURDERED BY THORBJORN OXMAIN
There was dwelling with Thorbjorn Oxmain a man whose name was Ali, a
servant, rather stubborn and lazy. Thorbjorn told him he must work better or he
would be beaten. Ali said he had no mind for work and became abusive. Thorbjorn
was not going to endure that, and got him down and handled him roughly. After
that Ali ran away and went to the North across the neck to Midfjord; he did not
stop till he reached Bjarg. Atli was at home and asked whither he was going. He
said he was seeking an engagement.
"Are you not a servant of Thorbjorn?" Atli asked.
"We did not get on with our bargain. I was not there long, but it
seemed to me a bad place while I was there. Our parting was in such a way that
his song on my throat did not please me. I will never go back there, whatever
becomes of me. And it is true that there is a great difference between you two
in the way you treat your servants. I would be glad to take service with you if
there is a place, for me."
Atli said: "I have servants enough without stretching forth my hands
for those whom Thorbjorn has hired. You seem an impatient man and had better go
back to him."
"I am not going there of my own free will," said Ali.
He stayed there for the night, and in the morning went out to work with
Atli's men, and toiled as if he had hands everywhere. So he continued all the
summer; Atli took no notice of him, but allowed him his food, for he was
pleased with the man's work. Soon Thorbjorn learned that Ali was at Bjarg. He
rode thither with two others and called to Atli to come out and speak with him.
Atli went out and greeted him.
"You want to begin again provoking me to attack you, Atli," he
said. "Why have you taken away my workman? It is a most improper thing to
do."
Atli replied: "It is not very clear to me that he is your workman. I do
not want to keep him if you can prove that he belongs to your household; but I
cannot drive him out of my house."
"You must have your way now," said Thorbjorn; "but I claim
the man and protest against his working for you. I shall come again, and it is
not certain that we shall then part any better friends than we are now."
Atli rejoined: "I shall stay at home and abide whatever comes to
hand."
Thorbjorn then went off home. When the workmen came back in the evening Atli
told them of his conversation with Thorbjorn and said to Ali that he must go
his own ways, for he was not going to be drawn into a quarrel for employing
him.
Ali said: "True is the ancient saying: The over-praised are the worst
deceivers. I did not think that you would have turned me off now after I had
worked here till I broke in the summer. I thought that you would have given me
protection. Such is your way, however you play the beneficent. Now I shall be
beaten before your very eyes if you refuse to stand by me."
Atli's mind was changed after the man had spoken; he no longer wanted to
drive him away.
So the time passed until the hay-harvest began. One day a little before
midsummer Thorbjorn Oxmain rode to Bjarg. He wore a helmet on his head, a sword
was girt at his side, and in his hand was a spear which had a very broad blade.
The weather was rainy; Atli had sent his men to mow the hay, and some were in
the North at Horn on some work. Atli was at home with a few men only. Thorbjorn
arrived alone towards midday and rode up to the door. The door was shut and no
one outside. Thorbjorn knocked at the door and then went to the back of the
house so that he could not be seen from the door. The people in the house heard
some one knocking and one of the women went out. Thorbjorn got a glimpse of the
woman, but did not let himself be seen, for he was seeking another person. She
went back into the room and Atli asked her who had come. She said she could see
nobody outside. As they were speaking Thorbjorn struck a violent blow on the
door. Atli said:
"He wants to see me; perhaps he has some business with me, for he seems
very pressing."
Then he went to the outer door and saw nobody there. It was raining hard, so
he did not go outside, but stood holding both the door-posts with his hands and
peering round. At that moment Thorbjorn sidled round to the front of the door
and thrust his spear with both hands into Atli's middle, so that it pierced him
through. Atli said when he received the thrust: "They use broad
spear-blades nowadays."
Then he fell forward on the threshold. The women who were inside came out
and saw that he was dead. Thorbjorn had then mounted his horse; he proclaimed
the slaying and rode home. Asdis, the mistress of the house, sent for men;
Atli's body was laid out and he was buried beside his father. There was much
lamentation over his death, for he was both wise and beloved. No blood-money
was paid for his death, nor was any demanded, for his representative was Grettir,
if he should ever return to Iceland. The matter rested there during the summer.
Thorbjorn gained little credit by this deed, but remained quietly at home.
CHAPTER XKVI
SENTENCE OF OUTLAWRY PASSED UPON GRETTIR AT THE ALL-THING
In that same summer before the assembly of the Thing there came a ship out
to Gasar bringing news of Grettir and of his house- burning adventure. Thorir
of Gard was very angry when he heard of it and bethought himself of vengeance
for his sons upon Grettir. Thorir rode with a large retinue to the Thing and
laid a complaint in respect of the burning, but men thought nothing could be
done as long as there was no one to answer the charge. Thorir insisted that he
would be content with nothing short of banishment for Grettir from the whole
country after such a crime. Then Skapti the Lawman said: "It certainly was
an evil deed if all really happened as has been told. But One man's tale is but
half a tale. Most people try and manage not to improve a story if there is more
than one version of it. I hold that no judgment should be passed for Grettir's
banishment without further proceedings."
Thorir was a notable person and possessed great influence in the district;
many powerful men were his friends. He pressed his suit so strongly that nothing
could be done to save Grettir. Thorir had him proclaimed an outlaw throughout
the country, and was ever afterwards the most bitter of his opponents, as he
often found. Having put a price upon his head, as it was usual to do with other
outlaws, he rode home. Many said that the decree was carried more by violence
than by law, but it remained in force. Nothing more happened until after
midsummer.
CHAPTER XLVII
GRETTIR RETURNS TO BJARG -- SVEINN AND HIS HORSE SADDLE-HEAD
Later in the summer Grettir the son of Asmund came back to Iceland, landing
in the Hvita in Borgarfjord. People about the district went down to the ship
and all the news came at once upon Grettir, first that his father was dead,
then that his brother was slain, and third that he was declared outlaw
throughout the land. Then he spoke this verse:
"All fell at once upon the bard,
exile, father dead and brother.
Oh man of battle! Many an one
who breaks the swords shall smart for this."
It is told that Grettir changed his manner no whit for these tidings, but
was just as merry as before. He remained on board his ship for a time because
he could not get a horse to suit him.
There was a man named Sveinn who dwelt at Bakki up from Thingnes. He was a
good bondi and a merry companion; he often composed verses which it was a
delight to listen to. He had a brown mare, the swiftest of horses, which he
called Saddle-head. Once Grettir left Vellir in the night because he did not
wish the traders to know of it. He got a black cape and put it over his clothes
to conceal himself. He went up past Thingnes to Bakki, by which time it was
light. Seeing a brown horse in the meadow he went up and put a bridle on it,
mounted on its back and rode up along the Hvita river below Baer on to the
river Flokadalsa and up to the road above Kalfanes. The men working at Bakki
were up by then, and told the bondi that a man was riding his horse. He got up
and laughed and spoke a verse:
"There rode a man upon Saddle-head's back;
close to the garth the thief has come.
Frey of the Odin's cloud, dreadful of aspect,
appears from his strength to be busy with mischief."
Then he took a horse and rode after him. Grettir rode on till he came to the
settlement at Kropp, where he met a man named Halli who said he was going down
to the ship at Vellir. Grettir then spoke a verse:
"Tell, oh tell in the dwellings abroad
tell thou hast met with Saddle-head.
The handler of dice in sable cowl
sat on his back; hasten, oh Halli!"
Then they parted. Halli went along the road as far as Kalfanes before he met
Sveinn. They greeted each other hurriedly and Sveinn said:
"Saw you that loafer ride from the dwellings?
Sorely he means my patience to try.
The people about shall deal with him roughly;
blue shall his body be if I meet him."
"You can know from what I tell you," said Halli, "that I met
the man who said he was riding Saddle-head, and he told me to spread it abroad
in the dwellings and the district. He was a huge man in a black cloak."
"Well, he seems to think something of himself," said the bondi.
"I mean to know who he is."
Then he went on after him. Grettir came to Deildartunga and found a woman
outside. He began to talk to her and spoke a verse:
"Mistress august! Go tell of the jest
that the serpent of earth has past on his way.
The garrulous brewer of Odin's mead
will come to Gilsbakki before he will rest."
The woman learned the verse and Grettir rode on. Soon after Sveinn rode up;
she was still outside, and when he came he spoke the verse:
"Who was the man who a moment ago
rode past on a dusky horse in the storm?
The hound-eyed rascal, practised in mischief.
This day I will follow his steps to the end."
She told him as she had been taught. He considered the lines and said:
"It is not unlikely that this man is no play-fellow for me. But I mean to
catch him."
He then rode along the cultivated country. Each could see the other's path.
The weather was stormy and wet. Grettir reached Gilsbakki that day, where Grim
the son of Thorhall welcomed him warmly and begged him to stay, which he did.
He let Saddle-head run loose and told Grim how he had come by her. Then Sveinn
came up, dismounted and saw his horse. Then he said:
"Who has ridden on my mare?
Who will pay me for her hire?
Who ever saw such an arrant thief?
What next will be the cowl-man's game?"
Grettir had then put off his wet clothes, and heard the ditty. He said:
"Home I rode the mare to Grim's,
a better man than the hovel-dweller!
Nothing will I pay for hire!
Now we may be friends again."
"Just so shall it be," said the bondi. "Your ride on the
horse is fully paid for."
Then they each began repeating verses, and Grettir said he could not blame
him for looking after his property. The bondi stayed there the night and they
had great jokes about the matter. The verses they made were called
"Saddle-head verses." In the morning the bondi rode home, parting
good friends with Grettir. Grim told Grettir of many things that had been done
in Midfjord in the North during his absence, and that no blood-money had been
paid for Atli. Thorbjorn Oxmain's interest, he said, was so great that there
was no certainty of Grettir's mother, Asdis, being allowed to remain at Bjarg
if the feud continued.
Grettir stayed but a few nights with Grim, for he did not want it to become
known that he was about to travel North across the Heath. Grim told him to come
back to visit him if he needed protection. "Yet," he said, "I
would gladly avoid the penalty of being outlawed for harbouring you."
Grettir bade him farewell and said: "It is more likely that I shall
need your good services still more later on."
Then Grettir rode North over the Tvidaegra Heath to Bjarg, where he arrived
at midnight. All were asleep except his mother. He went to the back of the
house and entered by a door which was there, for he knew all the ways about. He
entered the hall and went to his mother's bed, groping his way. She asked who
was there. Grettir told her. She sat up and turned to him, heaving a weary sigh
as she spoke:
"Welcome, my kinsman! My hoard of sons has quickly passed away. He is
killed who was most needful to me; you have been declared an outlaw and a
criminal; my third is so young that he can do nothing."
"It is an ancient saying," said Grettir, "that one evil is
mended by a worse one. There is more in the heart of man than money can buy;
Atli may yet be avenged. As for me, there will be some who think they have had
enough in their dealings with me."
She said that was not unlikely. Grettir stayed there for a time, but few
knew of it, and he obtained news of the movements of the men of the district.
It was not known then that he had come to Midfjord. He learned that Thorbjorn
Oxmain was at home with few men. This was after the hay-harvest.
CHAPTER XLVIII
DEATH OF THORBJORN OXMAIN
One fine day Grettir rode to the West across the ridge to Thoroddsstad,
where he arrived about noon and knocked at the door. Some women came out and
greeted him, not knowing who he was. He asked for Thorbjorn, and they told him
that he was gone out into the fields to bind hay with his sixteen-year-old son
Arnor. Thorbjorn was a hard worker and was scarcely ever idle. Grettir on
hearing that bade them farewell and rode off North on the road to Reykir. There
is some marsh-land stretching away from the ridge with much grass-land, where
Thorbjorn had made a quantity of hay which was just dry. He was just about to
bind it up for bringing in with the help of his son, while a woman gathered up
what was left. Grettir rode to the field from below, Thorbjorn and his son
being above him; they had finished one load and were beginning a second.
Thorbjorn had laid down his shield and sword against the load, and his son had
his hand-axe near him.
Thorbjorn saw a man coming and said to his son: "There is a man riding
towards us; we had better stop binding the hay and see what he wants."
They did so; Grettir got off his horse. He had a helmet on his head, a short
sword by his side, and a great spear in his hand without barbs and inlaid with
silver at the socket. He sat down and knocked out the rivet which fastened the
head in order to prevent Thorbjorn from returning the spear upon him.
Thorbjorn said: "This is a big man. I am no good at judging men if that
is not Grettir the son of Asmund. No doubt be thinks that he has sufficient
business with us. We will meet him boldly and show him no signs of fear. We
must act with a plan. I will go on ahead towards him and see how we get on
together, for I will trust myself against any man if I can meet him alone. Do
you go round and get behind him; take your axe with both hands and strike him
between the shoulders. You need not fear that he will hurt you, for his back
will be turned towards you."
Neither of them had a helmet. Grettir went along the marsh and when he was
within range launched his spear at Thorbjorn. The head was not so firm as he
had intended it to be, so it got loose in its flight and fell off on to the
ground. Thorbjorn took his shield, held it before him, drew his sword and
turned against Grettir directly he recognised him. Grettir drew his sword, and,
turning round a little, saw the boy behind him; so he kept continually on the
move. When he saw that the boy was within reach he raised his sword aloft and
struck Arnor's head with the back of it such a blow that the skull broke and he
died. Then Thorbjorn rushed upon Grettir and struck at him, but he parried it
with the buckler in his left hand and struck with his sword a blow which
severed Thorbjorn's shield in two and went into his head, reaching the brain.
Thorbjorn fell dead. Grettir gave him no more wounds; he searched for the
spear-head but could not find it. He got on to his horse, rode to Reykir and
proclaimed the slaying.
The woman who was out in the field with them witnessed the battle. She ran
home terrified and told the news that Thorbjorn and his son were killed. The
people at home were much taken aback, for no one was aware of Grettir's
arrival. They sent to the next homestead for men, who came in plenty and
carried the body to the church. The bloodfeud then fell to Thorodd Drapustuf,
who at once called out his men.
Grettir rode home to Bjarg and told his mother what had happened. She was
very glad and said he had now shown his kinship to the Vatnsdal race. "And
yet," she said, "this is the root and the beginning of your outlawry;
for certain I know that your dwelling here will not be for long by reason of
Thorbjorn's kinsmen, and now they may know that they have the means of annoying
you."
Grettir then spoke a verse:
"Atli's death was unatoned;
fully now the debt is paid."
Asdis said it was true: "but I know not what counsel you now mean to
take."
Grettir said he meant now to visit his friends and kinsmen in the western
regions, and that she should have no unpleasantness on his account. Then he
made ready to go, and parted with much affection from his mother. First he went
to Melar in Hrutafjord and recounted to his brother-in-law Gamli all his
adventure with Thorbjorn. Gamli begged him to betake himself away from
Hrutafjord while the kinsmen of Thorbjorn were abroad with their men, and said
they would support him in the suit about Atli's slaying to the best of their
power. Then Grettir rode to the West across the Laxardal Heath and did not stop
before he reached Ljarskogar, where he stayed some time in the autumn with
Thorsteinn Kuggason.
CHAPTER XLIX
GRETTIR VISITS THORSTEINN KUGGASON AND SNORRI GODI
Thorodd Drapustuf now made inquiries who it was who had killed Thorbjorn and
his son. They went to Reykir, where they were told that Grettir had proclaimed
the slaying. Thorodd then saw how matters stood and went to Bjarg, where he
found many people and asked whether Grettir was there. Asdis said that he was
gone, and that he would not hide if he were at home.
"You can be well content to leave things as they are. The vengeance for
Atli was not excessive, if it be reckoned up. No one asked what I had to suffer
then, and now it were well for it to rest."
Then they rode home, and it seemed as if there were nothing to be done. The
spear which Grettir had lost was never found until within the memory of men now
living. It was found in the later days of Sturla the Lawman, the son of Thord,
in the very marsh where Thorbjorn fell, now called Spearmarsh. This is the
proof that he was killed there and not in Midfitjar, as has been elsewhere
asserted.
Thorbjorn's kinsmen learned of Grettir's being in Ljarskogar and called
together their men with the purpose of going there. Gamli heard of this at
Melar and sent word to Thorsteinn and Grettir of their approach. Thorsteinn
sent Grettir on to Tunga to Snorri the Godi, with whom he was then at peace,
and advised Grettir to ask for his protection, and if it were refused to go
West to Thorgils the son of Ari in Reykjaholar, "who will surely take you
in for the winter. Stay there in the Western fjords until the affair is
settled."
Grettir said he would follow his counsel. He rode to Tunga where he found
Snorri and asked to be taken in. Snorri answered: "I am now an old man,
and have no mind to harbour outlaws, unless in a case of necessity. But what
has happened that the old man should have turned you out?"
Grettir said that Thorsteinn had often shown him kindness; "but we
shall need more than him alone to do any good."
Snorri said: "I will put in my word on your behalf, if it will be of
any use to you. But you must seek your quarters elsewhere than with me."
So they parted. Grettir then went West to Reykjanes. The men of Hrutafjord
came with their followers to Samsstad, where they heard that Grettir had left
Ljarskogar, and went back home.
CHAPTER L
GRETTIR WINTERS WITH THORGILS AT REYKJAHOLAR IN COMPANY WITH THE
FOSTER-BROTHERS
Grettir came to Reykjaholar towards the beginning of the winter and asked
Thorgils to let him stay the winter with him. Thorgils said he was welcome to
his entertainment, like other free men; "but," he said, "we do
not pay much attention to the preparation of the food."
Grettir said that would not trouble him.
"There is another little difficulty," Thorgils continued.
"Some men are expected here who are a little hot-headed, namely, the
foster-brothers Thorgeir and Thormod. I do not know how it will suit you to be
together with them. They shall always have entertainment here whenever they
wish for it. You may stay here if you will, but I will not have any of you
behaving ill to the others."
Grettir said that he would not be the first to raise a quarrel with any man,
more especially since the bondi had expressed his wish to him.
Soon after the foster-brothers came up. Thorgeir and Grettir did not take
very kindly to one another, but Thormod behaved with propriety. Thorgils said
to them what he had said to Grettir, and so great was the deference paid to him
that none of them spoke an improper word to the other, although they did not
always think alike. In this way the first part of the winter was passed.
Men say that the islands called Olafseyjar, lying in the fjord about a mile
and a half from Reykjanes, belonged to Thorgils. He had there a valuable ox,
which he had not brought away in the autumn. He was always saying that he
wanted him to be brought in before Yule. One day the foster-brothers prepared
to go and fetch the ox, but wanted a third man to help them. Grettir offered to
go with them and they were very glad to have him. So the three set out in a
ten-oared boat. The weather was cold and the wind from the North; the boat was
lying at Hvalshausholm. When they left the wind had freshened a little; they
reached the island and caught the ox. Grettir asked whether they preferred to
ship the ox or to hold the boat, for there was a high surf running on the
shore. They told him to hold the boat. He stood by her middle on the side away
from the land, the sea reaching right up to beneath his shoulders, but he held
the boat firmly so that she could not drift. Thorgeir took the ox by the stern
and Thormod by the head, and so they hove him into the boat. Then they started
heading for the bay, Thormod taking the bow-oars with Thorgeir amidships and
Grettir in the stern. By the time they reached Hafraklett the wind was very
high. Thorgeir said: "The stern is slackening."
Grettir said: "The stem will not be left behind if the rowing amidships
is all right."
Thorgeir then bent his back to the oars and pulled so violently that both
the rowlocks carried away. He said:
"Pull on, Grettir, whilst I mend the rowlocks."
Grettir pulled vigorously whilst Thorgeir mended the rowlocks. But when
Thorgeir was about to take over the oars again they were so damaged that on
Grettir giving them a shake on the gunwale they broke. Thormod said it would be
better to row less and not to break the ship. Then Grettir took two spars which
were on board, bored two holes in the gunwale, and rowed so energetically that
every timber creaked. As the boat was well found and the men in good condition
they reached Hvalshausholm. Grettir asked whether they would go on home with
the ox or whether they would beach the boat. They preferred to beach the boat,
and they did so with all the water that was in her all frozen. Grettir got off
the ox, which was very stiff in its limbs and very fat and tired; when they got
to Titlingsstad it could go no more. The foster-brothers went home, for none of
them would help the other at his job. Thorgils asked after Grettir; they told
him how they had parted, and he sent men out to him. When they came below
Hellisholar they saw a man coming towards them with an ox on his back; it was
Grettir carrying the ox. They all admired his great feat, but Thorgeir became rather
jealous of Grettir's strength.
One day soon after Yule Grettir went out alone to bathe. Thorgeir knew of it
and said to Thormod: "Let us go out now and see what Grettir does if I
attack him as he comes out of the water"
"I don't care to do that," Thormod said; "and I do not think
you will get any good from him."
"I mean to go," Thorgeir said.
He went down to the bank, carrying his axe aloft. Grettir was just coming
out of the water, and when they met Thorgeir said: "Is it true, Grettir,
that you once said you would not run away from any single person."
"I don't know whether I did," Grettir said; "but I have
scarcely run away from you."
Thorgeir raised his axe. In a moment Grettir ran at him and brought him over
with a heavy fall. Thorgeir said to Thormod: "Are you going to stand there
while this devil knocks me down?"
Thormod then got Grettir by the leg and tried to drag him off Thorgeir but
could not. He was wearing a short sword, and was just about to draw it when
Thorgils came up and told them to behave themselves and not to fight with
Grettir. They did as he bade and made out that it was all play. They had no
more strife, so far as has been told, and men thought Thorgils blessed by
fortune in having been able to pacify men of such violent tempers.
When the spring set in they all departed. Grettir went on to Thorskafjord.
When some one asked him how he liked his entertainment at Reykjaholar he
answered: "Our fare was such that I enjoyed my food very much -- when I
could get it." Then he went West over the heath.
CHAPTER LI
GRETTIR'S CASE OVERBORNE AT THE ALL-THING
Thorgils, the son of Ari, rode to the Thing with a large following. All the
magnates were there from all parts of the country, and he soon met with Skapti
the Lawman and had some talk with him. Skapti said:
"Is it true, Thorgils, that you have been giving winter entertainment
to three of the most unruly men in the country, all three of them outlaws, and
that you kept order so well that none of them did any harm to the other?"
Thorgils said it was true.
Skapti said: "Well, I think it shows what authority you possess. But
how did their characters appear to you? Who is the most valorous among
them?"
"They are all entirely valiant," he answered, "but of two of
them I will not say that they never fear; only there is a difference. Thormod
fears God, and is a man of great piety; and Grettir fears the dark. He will
not, if he may follow his own inclination, venture anywhere after nightfall.
But Thorgeir, my kinsman, he I think cannot fear."
"They must be each of them as you say," said Skapti, and there
their conversation ended.
At the Thing Thorodd Drapustuf laid his complaint in the matter of the
slaying of Thorbjorn Oxmain, for he had failed in the Hunavatn Thing through
the influence of Atli's kinsmen. Here he thought that there was less likelihood
of his case being overborne. Atli's party sought counsel of Skapti the Lawman;
he said that their defence appeared to him a good one, and that full
blood-money would have to be paid for Atli. Then the case was brought before
the judges, and the opinion of the majority was that the slaying of Atli was
set off by that of Thorbjorn. Skapti when he heard of it went to the judges and
asked them on what grounds their decision rested; they said that the two slain
bondis were of equal rank.
Skapti asked: "Which happened first, the outlawing of Grettir or the
death of Atli?"
"They reckoned up and found that a week had elapsed between the two
events. Grettir was outlawed at the All-Tliing and Atli was killed just after
it.
"That was what I expected," Skapti said. "You have overlooked
the facts; you have treated as a party to the suit a man who was an outlaw, a
man who was stopped from appearing either as plaintiff or defendant. I maintain
that Grettir has no standing in the case, and that it must be brought by the
kinsmen of the deceased who are nearest at law."
Thorodd Drapustuf said: "Who then is to answer for the slaying of my
brother Thorbjorn?"
"See to that yourself," said Skapti. "Grettir's kinsmen are
not liable to pay for his deeds unless his sentence be removed."
When Thorvald the son of Asgeir learned of Grettir's status in court having
been disallowed, inquiry was made for Atli's nearest of kin, and these were
found to be Skeggi the son of Gamli at Melar and Ospak the son of Glum of Eyr
in Bitra. Both were valiant and strenuous men. Thorodd was then mulcted in
blood- money for the slaying of Atli and had to pay two hundreds of silver.
Then Snorri the Godi spoke:
"Men of Hrutafjord! Are you willing now to agree to the remission of
the fine in consideration of Grettir's sentence being commuted? I expect that
as an outlaw he will bite you sorely."
Grettir's kinsmen welcomed this proposal, and said they did not care about
the money if Grettir could have peace and freedom. Thorodd said he saw that his
case was beset with difficulties, and that for his part he was willing to
accept the proposal. Snorri said that inquiry must first be made whether Thorir
of Gard would agree to Grettir being freed. When Thorir heard of it he was
furious, and said that never should Grettir either go or come out of his
outlawry. So far from consenting to his being amnestied, he would put a higher
price upon his head than was put upon any other outlaw.
When they knew that he would take it so ill, nothing more was said about the
amnesty. Ospak and Skeggi took the money that was paid and kept it, while
Thorodd Drapustuf got no compensation for his brother Thorbjorn. He and Thorir
each offered a reward of three marks of silver for Grettir's head; this seemed
to men to be an innovation, for never before had more than three marks in all
been offered. Snorri said it was very unwise to make such efforts to keep a man
outlawed who could do so much mischief, and that many would suffer for it. Then
they parted and men rode home from the Thing.
CHAPTER LII
GRETTIR IS CAPTURED BY FARMERS AND RELEASED BY THORBJORG
Grettir went over the Thorskafjord Heath to Langadal, where he let his hands
sweep over the property of the smaller cultivators, taking what he wanted from
every one. From some he got weapons, from others clothes. They gave up their
property very variously, but when he was gone all said that they had been
compelled to do it.
There dwelt on the Vatnsfjord one Vermund the Slender, a brother of
Viga-Styr, who had married Thorbjorg the daughter of Olaf Peacock, the son of
Hoskuld, called Thorbjorg the Fat. At the time when Grettir was in Langadal
Vermund was away at the Thing. He went across the ridge to Laugabol where a man
named Helgi was living, one of the principal bondis. Thence Grettir took a good
horse belonging to the bondi and rode on to Gervidal, where dwelt a man named
Thorkell. He was well provided but in a small way of business. Grettir took
from him what he wanted, Thorkell daring neither to withhold anything nor to
protest. Thence Grettir went to Eyr and on to the coast of the fjord, obtaining
food and clothes from every homestead and making himself generally
disagreeable, so that men found it hard to live while he was about.
Grettir went boldly on, taking little care of himself. He went on until he
came to Vatnsfjardardal and entered a dairy shelter, where he stayed several
nights. There he lay sleeping in the forest, fearing for nothing. When the
shepherds learned of it they reported in the homesteads that a fiend had come
into the place who they thought would be hard to deal with. All the farmers
came together and a band of thirty of them concealed themselves in the forest
where Grettir could not know of them. They set one of the shepherds to watch
for an opportunity of seizing him, without however knowing very clearly who the
man was.
One day when Grettir was lying asleep the farmers came up to him. They
considered how they should take him with least danger to themselves, and
arranged that ten should fall upon him while others laid bonds round his feet.
They threw themselves on to him, but Grettir struggled so violently that he
threw them all off and came down on his hands and knees. Then they threw ropes
round his feet. Grettir kicked two of them in the ears and they fell senseless.
One came on after the other; long and hard he struggled, but at last they
succeeded in getting him down and binding him. Then they began to ask
themselves what they were going to do with him. They asked Helgi of Laugabol to
take him over and look after him until Vermund returned from the Thing.
He said: "I have something better to do than to keep my men guarding
him. I have labour enough with my lands, and he shall not come in my way."
Then they asked Thorkell of Gervidal to take him and said he had sufficient
means. He objected strongly and said he had no accommodation for him, "I
lie at home with my wife, far from other men. You shall not bring your basket
to me."
"Then you, Thoralf of Eyr," they said; "you take Grettir and
look after him well while the Thing lasts, or else hand him on to the next
farm; only be answerable for his not escaping. Give him over bound, just as you
receive him."
He said: "I am not going to take Grettir. I have neither means nor
money to keep him, nor was he captured on my property. So far as I can see much
more trouble than credit is to be got by taking him or having anything to do
with him. He shall not enter my house."
Each of the bondis was asked, but all refused. Some witty person wrote a
poem about these confabulations and called it "Grettir's Faring,"
adding many jests of his own for the dilectification of men. After parleying
for a long time they all came to an agreement that they would not throw away
their luck, and set to work to raise a gallows there and then in the forest
upon which Grettir should hang. Their delight over this proposal was
uproarious.
Then they saw three people riding along the valley from below, one of them
in a dyed dress. They guessed that it must be Thorbjorg the mistress of
Vatnsfjord on her way to the dairy, and so it was. Thorbjorg was a person of
great magnificence, and tremendously wise. She was the leading personage of the
district and managed everything when Vermund was away. She came up to where the
crowd was gathered and was lifted from her horse; the bondis saluted her
respectfully. She said:
"What is your meeting about? Who is this thick-necked man sitting there
in bonds?"
Grettir told his name and saluted her.
"What has moved you, Grettir," she said, "to commit violence
upon my Thing-men?"
"I cannot overlook everything," he said. "I must be
somewhere."
"You are indeed unfortunate," she said, "that a pack of
churls like these should have captured you and that none of them should have
paid for it. What are you men going to do with him?"
The bondis said that they were going to hoist him on to a gallows for his
misdeeds.
She said: "It may be that Grettir has deserved it, but it will bring
trouble upon you men of Isafjord if you take the life of a man so renowned and
so highly connected as Grettir, ill-starred though he be. Now what will you do
for your life, Grettir, if I give it to you?"
"What do you wish me to do?"
"You shall swear never to commit any violence here in Isafjord; nor
shall you take revenge upon those who have had a hand in capturing you."
Grettir said it should be as she desired, and he was released. He said it
was the greatest effort of self-restraint that he ever made that he did not
thrash the men who were there triumphing over him. Thorbjorg told him to come
home with her and gave him a horse to ride on. So he went to Vatnsfjord and
stayed there well cared for by the mistress until Vermund returned. She gained
great renown from this deed through the district. Vermund was very much put out
when he got home and asked why Grettir was there. Thorbjorg told him everything
which had happened with the Isafjord men.
"To what does he owe it that you gave him his life?" he asked.
"Many reasons there were," she said. "The first is that you
might be the more respected as a chief for having a wife who would dare to do
such a thing. Next, his kinswoman Hrefna will surely say that I could not let
him be slain; and thirdly, because he is in many respects a man of the highest
worth."
"You are a wise woman," he said, "in most things. I thank you
for what you have done."
Then he said to Grettir: "You have sold yourself very cheap, such a man
of prowess as you are, to let yourself be taken by churls. This is what always
happens to those who cannot control themselves."
Grettir then spoke a verse:
"Full was my cup in Isafjord
when the old swine held me at ransom."
"What were they going to do with you when they took you?" Vermund
asked.
"To Sigar's lot my neck was destined
when noble Thorbjorg came upon them."
"Would they have hanged you then if they had been left to
themselves?"
"My neck would soon have been in the noose,
had she not wisely saved the bard."
"Did she invite you to her home?"
"She bade me home with her to fare.
A steed she gave me, life and peace."
"Great will your life be and troublous," said Vermund; "but
now you have learnt to beware of your foes. I cannot keep you here, for it
would rouse the enmity of many powerful men against me. Your best way is to
seek your kinsmen; there are not many who will be willing to take you in if
they can do anything else; nor are you one who will easily follow the will of
another man."
Grettir remained for a time in Vatnsfjord and went thence to the Western
fjords and tried several of the leading men there, but something always
happened to prevent their taking him in.
CHAPTER LIII
GRETTIR WINTERS IN LJARSKOGAR WITH THORSTEINN KUGGASON
During the autumn Grettir returned to the South and did not stop till he
came to his kinsman Thorsteinn Kuggason in Ljarskogar, who welcomed him. He
accepted Thorsteinn's invitation to stay the winter with him. Thorsteinn was a
man who worked very hard; he was a smith, and kept a number of men working for
him. Grettir was not one for hard work, so that their dispositions did not
agree very well. Thorsteinn had had a church built on his lands, with a bridge
from his house, made with much ingenuity. Outside the bridge, on the beam which
supported it, rings were fastened and bells, which could be heard from
Skarfsstadir half a sea-mile distant when any one walked over the bridge. The
building of the bridge had cost Thorsteinn, who was a great worker in iron,
much labour. Grettir was a first-rate hand at forging the iron, but was not
often inclined to work at it. He was very quiet during the winter so that there
is not much to relate.
The men of Hrutafjord heard that Grettir was with Thorsteinn, and gathered
their forces in the spring. Thorsteinn then told Grettir that he must find some
other hiding-place for himself, since he would not work. Men who did nothing
did not suit him.
"Where do you mean me to go to? "asked Grettir.
Thorsteinn told him to go South to his kinsmen, but to return to him if he
found them of no use.
Grettir did so. He went to Borgarfjord in the South to visit Grim the son of
Thorhall, and stayed with him till the Thing was over. Grim sent him on to
Skapti the Lawman at Hjalli. He went South over the lower heaths and did not
stop before he reached Tunga, where he went to Thorhall, the son of Asgrim the
son of Ellidagrim, and paid few visits to the farms around. Thorhall knew of
Grettir through the relations which had been between their ancestors; indeed
Grettir's name was well known throughout the country because of his exploits.
Thorhall was a wise man and treated Grettir well, but did not want to keep him
there for very long.
CHAPTER LIV
ADVENTURE WITH LOPT
Grettir went from Tunga up the Haukadal valley northwards to Kjol and was
there for some time in the summer. For men travelling either to the North or to
the South there was no certainty of their not being stripped of what they had
on them, for he was hard pressed for the means of living.
One day when Grettir was keeping to the North near Dufunesskeid he saw a man
riding South along the Kjol valley. He was a tall man on horseback, riding a
good horse with a studded bridle, and was leading another horse loaded with
sacks. He had a slouched hat on his head, so that his face was not clearly
seen. Grettir was very pleased to see his horse and his property, and went to
meet him and asked him his name. He said it was Lopt, and added: "I know
what your name is; you are Grettir the Strong, son of Asmund. Whither are you
going?"
"I have not made up my mind yet about that," said Grettir.
"My present business is to know whether you will lay off some of the
property which you are travelling with."
"Why should I give you what belongs to me? What will you give me for
the things?"
"Have you not heard that I never pay anything? And yet it seems to most
people that I get what I want."
Lopt said: "Make this offer to those who seem good to you; I am not
going to give my property away for nothing. Let us each go our own way."
Then he whipped on his horse and was about to ride away from Grettir.
"We shall not part so quickly as that," said Grettir, and seized
the bridle of Lopt's horse in front of his hands, pulled it from him and held
it with both hands.
"Go your own way," said Lopt; "you will get nothing from me
as long as I am able to hold it."
"That shall now be tried," said Grettir.
Lopt reached down along the cheek-strap and got hold of the reins between
the end ring and Grettir's hands, pulling with such force that Grettir let go,
and at last Lopt wrenched the whole bridle away from him. Grettir looked at his
palms and thought that this man must have strength in his claws rather than
not. Then he looked at him and said: "Where are you going to now?
He answered:
"To the storm-driven den, over ice-clad heights,
I ride to the rock and the rest of the hand."
Grettir said: "There is no certainty to be had from asking where your
dwelling is if you do not speak more clearly." Then Lopt spake and said:
"I seek not to hide thy ways from thy ken.
'Tis the place which the Borgfirdings Balljokull call."
Then they parted. Grettir saw that he had no strength against this man. Then
he spoke a verse:
"Illugi brave and Atli were far.
Never again may such hap be mine!
The bridle was torn away from my hand.
Her tears will flow when I am afeared."
After this Grettir left Kjol and went South to Hjalli where he asked Skapti
for shelter. Skapti said: "I am told that you are acting with violence and
are robbing men of their property; that ill becomes a man so highly connected
as you are. It would be easier to negotiate if you gave up robbing. Now as I am
called Lawman of this country, it would not be seemly for me to break the law
by harbouring outlaws. I would like you to betake yourself somewhere where you
do not need to commit robbery."
Grettir said he would be very glad to, but that he could scarcely live alone
owing to his fear of the dark. Skapti said he would have to content himself
with something short of the best: "And trust no one so fully that what
happened to you in the Western fjords may be repeated. Many have been brought
to death by over-confidence."
Grettir thanked him for his good advice and turned back to Borgarfjord in
the autumn, when he went to his friend Grim, the son of Thorhall, and told him
what Skapti had said. Grim advised him to go to the North to Fiskivotn in the
Arnarvatn Heath, and he did so.
CHAPTER LV
GRETTIR IN THE ARNARVATN HEATH. DEATH OF GRIM THE FOREST-MAN
Grettir went up to the Arnarvatn Heath and built himself a hut there of
which the remains are still to be seen. He went there because he wanted to do
anything rather than rob, so he got himself a net and a boat and went out
fishing to support himself. It was a weary time for him in the mountains
because of his fear of the dark. Other outlaws heard of his having come there
and wanted to go and see him, thinking that he would be a great protection to
them.
There was an outlaw from the North named Grim. This man was bribed by those
of Hrutafjord to kill Grettir. They promised him pardon and money if he
succeeded. He went to visit Grettir and asked for his hospitality.
Grettir said: "I do not see how you will be holpen by coming to me, and
you men of the forest are untrustworthy. But it is ill to live alone; I have no
choice. Only he shall be with me who is willing to work at whatever comes to
hand."
Grim said that was just what he wished and pressed Grettir much, until
Grettir let himself be persuaded and took him in. He stayed there right into
the winter, and watched Grettir closely, but it seemed no easy matter to attack
him, for Grettir was suspicious and kept his weapons at hand night and day;
when he was awake the man would not venture to approach him.
One morning Grim came home from fishing and went into the hut stamping with
his feet and wanting to know whether Grettir was asleep. Grettir lay still and
did not move. There was a short sword hanging above his head. Grim thought he
would never have a better opportunity. He made a loud noise to see whether
Grettir took any notice, but he did not, so Grim felt sure that he was asleep.
He crept stealthily to the bed, reached up to the sword, took it down and
raised it to strike. just at the moment when he raised it Grettir sprang up on
to the floor, and, seizing the sword with one hand, Grim with the other, hurled
him over so that he fell nearly senseless. "This is how you have proved
yourself with all your friendly seeming," he said. Then he got the whole
truth out of him and killed him. He learned from this what it was to take in a
forest-man. So the winter passed. The hardest thing of all to bear was his fear
of the dark.
CHAPTER LVI
TREACHERY AND DEATH OF THORIR REDBEARD
Thorir of Gard now heard where Grettir had taken up his abode and meant to
leave no stone unturned to get him slain. There was a man named Thorir
Redbeard, a stout man and a great fighter, on which account he had been
declared outlaw throughout the country. Thorir of Gard sent word to him, and
when they met asked Redbeard to undertake the business of slaying Grettir.
Redbeard said that was no easy task, as Grettir was very wide awake and very
cautious. Thorir told him to try it, saying: "It would be a splendid deed
for a valiant man like you; I will get your outlawing removed and give you
sufficient money as well."
So Redbeard agreed and Thorir told him how he should go to work to deal with
Grettir. Redbeard then went away into the East in order that Grettir might not
suspect where he came from. Thence he came to the Arnarvatn Heath, where
Grettir had then been for one winter, found Grettir and asked him for
entertainment. He said: "I cannot allow people to play with me again as
the man did who came here last autumn, pretending to be very friendly; before
he had been here very long be began plotting against my life. I cannot risk
taking in anymore forest-men."
"I think you have reason," Thorir said, "to mistrust
forest-men. It may be you have heard tell of me as a man of blood and a
disturber of peace, but never did you hear of such a monstrous deed of me as
that I betrayed my host. Ill is the lot of him who has an ill name; for men
think of him but as such; nor would I have come here if I had had any better
choice. All is not lost for us if we stand together. You might venture so much
to begin with as to try how you like me, and then if you find any unfitness in
me turn me away."
"Well," said Grettir, "I will risk it with you; but know of a
surety that if I suspect you of any treachery it will be your death."
Thorir agreed. Grettir took him in and found that in whatever he did he had
the strength of two men. He was ready for anything that Grettir gave him to do.
Nothing did Grettir need to do for himself, and he had never lived so
comfortably since he had become an outlaw. Nevertheless he was so wary that
Thorir got no chance. Two years was Thorir Redbeard with Grettir on the Heath,
and at last he began to weary of it. He thought over what he could do to take
Grettir off his guard.
One night in the spring a heavy gale sprang up while they were asleep.
Grettir awoke and asked where their boat was. Thorir sprang up, ran to the
boat, broke her all in pieces, and threw the fragments about so that it looked
as if the storm had wrecked her. Then he returned to the hut and said aloud:
"You have had bad luck, my friend. Our boat is all broken in pieces and
the nets are lying far out in the lake."
"Get them back then," said Grettir. "It seems to me to be
your doing that the boat is smashed."
"Of all things which I can do," said Thorir, "swimming is
that which suits me least. In almost anything else I think I can hold my own
with any ordinary man. You know very well that I have been no burden to you
since I came here; nor would I ask you to do this if I were able to do it
myself."
Grettir then arose, took his arms and went to the lake. There was a point of
land running out into the lake with a large bay on the further side of it. The
water was deep up to the shore. Grettir said: "Swim out to the nets and
let me see what you are able to do."
"I told you before," Thorir said, "that I cannot swim. I do
not know now where all your boldness and daring are gone to."
"I could get the nets," he said; "but betray me not if I
trust you."
"Do not think such shameful and monstrous things of me," said
Thorir.
"You will prove yourself what you are," Grettir said.
Then he threw off his clothes and his weapons and swain out to the nets. He
gathered them together, returned to the shore and cast them up on to the bank.
just as he was about to land Thorir quickly seized his short sword and drew it.
He ran towards Grettir as he stepped on to the bank and aimed a blow at him.
Grettir threw himself down backwards into the water and sank like a stone.
Thorir stood by the shore intending to guard it until he came up. Grettir swam
beneath the water, keeping close to the bank so that Thorir could not see him,
and so reached the bay behind him, where he landed without letting himself be
seen. The first Thorir knew of it was when Grettir lifted him up over his head
and dashed him down with such violence that the sword fell out of his hand.
Grettir got possession of it and without speaking a word cut off his head. So
his life ended. After that Grettir refused to take in any forest-men, and yet
he could not live alone.
CHAPTER LVII
ATTACK ON GRETTIR BY THORIR OF GARD WITH EIGHTY MEN REPULSED WITH THE AID OF
HALLMUND
At the All-Thing Thorir of Gard learned of Thorir Redbeard having been
killed. It was evident that the matter was not so easy to deal with. He now
determined to ride from the Thing in a westerly direction through the lower
heath, and with the aid of about eighty men whom he had with him to take
Grettir's life. Grim the son of Thorhall heard of his plans and sent word to
Grettir, bidding him beware of himself. Grettir therefore continued closely to
watch the movements of men who came and went.
One day he saw a number of men coming in the direction of his place of
dwelling. He went into a gorge between two rocks, but did not go right away because
he did not see the whole of the troop. Thorir then came up with his whole party
and bade them go between his head and his body, saying that the scoundrel had
but a poor chance now.
"A filled cup is not yet drunk," answered Grettir. "You have
come far to seek me, and some of you shall bear the marks of our game before we
part."
Thorir urged his men on to attack him. The gorge was very narrow so that he
could easily defend it from one end, and he wondered much that they did not get
round to his rear to hurt him. Some of Thorir's men fell and some were wounded,
but they effected nothing. Then Thorir said: "I always heard that Grettir
was distinguished for his courage and daring, but I never knew that he was so
skilled in magic as I now see he is; for there fall half as many again behind
his back as before his face, and I see that we have to do with a troll instead
of a man."
So he bade his men retire, and they did so. Grettir wondered what the
explanation could be, but was terribly exhausted. Thorir and his men withdrew
and rode into the northern parts. Their expedition was considered very
disgraceful. Thorir had left eighteen men on the ground and had many wounded.
Grettir then went up the gorge and found there a man of huge stature sitting
up against the rock and sorely wounded. Grettir asked his name, and he said it
was Hallmund, adding: "That you may recognise me I may remind you that you
thought I gripped the reins rather tightly when I met you in Kjol last summer.
I think I have now made that good."
"Indeed," said Grettir, "I think you have done me a manly
service; whenever I can I will repay it."
"Now I wish," said Hallmund, "that you may come to my home,
for it must seem wearisome to you here on the Heath."
Grettir said he would come willingly, and they both went together to the
foot of the Balljokull, where Hallmund had a large cave. There they found his
daughter, a fine and well-grown maiden. They treated Grettir well, and the
daughter nursed both the wounded men to health again. Grettir stayed there some
time that summer. He composed an ode on Hallmund in which the line occurs:
"Hallmund steps from his mountain hall";
further:
"The war-fain sword in Arnarvatn
went forth to hew its bloody path.
Heroes inherit Kelduhverfi.
Hallmund the brave came forth from his den."
It is said that at that encounter Grettir slew six men and Hallmund twelve.
As the summer passed Grettir began to long for the habitations of men, and
to see his friends and kinsmen. Hallmund told him to visit him when he returned
to the South and Grettir promised to do so. He went westwards to Borgarfjord
and thence to Breidafjardardalir and sought counsel of Thorsteinn Kuggason as
to where he should go next. Thorsteinn said that his enemies were now becoming
so numerous that few would care to take him in; but told him to_go to Myrar and
see what he found there. So in the autumn he went to Myrar.
CHAPTER LVIII
GRETTIR VISITS BJORN THE HITDALE WARRIOR AND TAKES REFUGE IN THE
FAGRASKOGAFJALL
There lived in Holm Bjorn the Hitdale Warrior, who was the son of Arngeir,
the son of Bersi the Godless, the son of Balki, who was the first settler in
Hrutafjord, as has already been told. Bjorn was a great chief and a valiant
man, always ready to take in outlaws. He received Grettir well when he came to
Holm on account of the friendship which had existed between their former
kinsmen. Grettir asked if he would give him shelter, and Bjorn said that he had
so many quarrels throughout the land that men would be reluctant to take him in
for fear of being outlawed themselves. "But," he said, "I will
give you some help if you will leave the men who are under my protection in
peace, whatever you do to others in this part."
Grettir promised that he would, and Bjorn continued: "I have thought of
something. In the mountain which stretches away from the Hitara river there is
a good position for defence, and likewise a good hiding-place if it is
skilfully managed. There is a hole through the mountain from which you can see
down upon the high road that lies immediately beneath it, and a sandy slope
down to the road so steep that few could get up it if it were defended above by
one doughty man up in the hollow. It may, I think, be worth your while to
consider whether you can stay there; it is easy to go down from there to the
Myrar to get your supplies, and to reach the sea."
Grettir said he would trust to his foresight if he would help him a little.
Then he went to Fagraskogafjall and made himself a home there. He hung some
grey wadmal in front of the hole, and it looked from the road below as if one
could see through. Then he began to get in his supplies, but the Myramen
thought they had an unhappy visitor in Grettir.
Thord the son of Kolbeinn was an excellent poet who dwelt in Hitarnes. There
was a great feud between him and Bjorn at that time, and Bjorn thought it would
be more than half useful to him if Grettir were to busy himself with Thord's
men or his cattle. Grettir was a great deal with Bjorn and they had many games
of strength. It is related in Bjorn's saga that they were considered equal in
strength, but the opinion of most people is that Grettir was the strongest man
that had been in the land since the days when Orin Storolfsson and Thoralf
Skolmsson ceased their trials of strength. Grettir and Bjorn swam in one course
the whole length of the Hitara from the lake at its head down to the sea. They
brought the stepping-stones into the river which neither floods nor freezing
nor icedrifts have since moved from their places. Grettir stayed a year in
Fagraskogafjall without any attack being made upon him, and yet many lost their
property through his means and got nothing for it, because his position was
strong for defence and he was always in good friendship with those who were
nearest to him.
CHAPTER LIX
THE CHASTISEMENT OF GISLI
There was a man named Gisli; he was the son of that Thorsteinn whom Snorri
the Godi had caused to be slain. He was a big strong man, very ostentatious in
his dress and in his armour, a man with a high opinion of himself and very
boastful. He was a mariner, and landed at the Hvita river in the summer after
Grettir had spent a winter in the mountains. Thord the son of Kolbeinn rode to
his ship and was welcomed by Gisli, who offered him of his wares whatever he
cared to have. Thord accepted his offer and they began to have some talk
together. Gisli asked: "Is it true what I hear that you are in difficulty
how to rid yourself of a forest-man who is doing you much hurt?" "We
have made no attempt yet," said Thord, "because a great many think he
is difficult to reach, and have found it so."
"It seems likely that you will have trouble with Bjorn, unless you
drive him away. All the worse it is that I must be too far away next winter to
give you any help."
"It is better for you to know of him only by hearsay."
"Don't talk to me about Grettir," said Gisli. "I have been in
much greater straits in my campaigns with King Knut the Mighty and in the
western seas, where I was always considered to have held my own. Only let me
come within reach of him and I will trust myself and my armour."
Thord answered that he should not do it for nothing if he killed Grettir:
"There is more money on his head than on that of any other outlaw. First
there were six marks of silver, this summer Thorir of Gard added three more,
and men think that he who wins it will have had enough trouble."
"Everything will be attempted for money," said Gisli:
"especially with us traders. But we must keep quiet about what we have
been saying, for Grettir will be more on his guard if he hears that you have
taken me into your counsels. I intend next winter to be at Olduhrygg; is there
any hiding-place of his on my way there? He will not be prepared for this, and
I shall not take many men with me to attack him."
Thord approved of his proposal. He rode home soon after and kept very quiet
about it. And now was proved what has often been said, that: Off in the woods
is a listener nigh. Men who were friends of Bjorn in Hitardal overheard their
conversation and reported it accurately to him. Bjorn told Grettir of it when
they met, and said now he should see how to encounter him. "It would be no
bad joke," he said, "if you were to injure him in some way without
killing him if you can."
Grettir grinned but said little. Towards the time of gathering in the cattle
Grettir went down to Flysjuhverfi to get some sheep and got four wethers. The
bondis heard of his having come and went after him. They came up just at about
the moment when he reached the foot of his mountain and wanted to drive the
sheep away from him. But they would not attack him with weapons. There were six
of them and they stood across his path to bar his way. He was concerned about
his sheep, got angry, seized three of them and threw them down the hill so that
they lay senseless. The others when they saw it went at him, but rather
halfheartedly. Grettir took the sheep, fastened them together by the horns,
threw two over each shoulder and carried them off. Then he went up into his
den. The bondis turned back feeling they had had the worst of it, and were more
discontented with their lot than ever.
Gisli stayed with his ship that autumn until she was ready to be hauled up.
Several things happened to delay him, so that he was late in getting away and
rode off very little before the winter nights. Then he rode North and stayed at
Hraun on the south bank of the Hitara. Next morning before he rode out he said
to his servants: "Now we will ride in red clothes and let the forest-man
see that we are not like the other travellers who beat about here every
day."
There were three of them and they did as he bade. When they had crossed the
river he said: "Here I am told dwells the forest-man, up in that peak; but
the way is not an easy one. Would it not please him to come to us and see our
array?" They said this was always his habit.
That morning Grettir had got up early. The weather was cold, it was freezing
and some snow had fallen, but very little. He saw three men riding from the
South across the Hitara, and the light shone from their apparel and from their
enamelled shields. It occurred to Grettir who it might be, and he thought he
would relieve them of some of their accoutrements. He was very curious to meet
a man who went about so ostentatiously. So he took his weapons and hurried down
the hillside. Gisli when he heard the clattering of the stones said: "A
man, rather tall, is coming down the hill and wants to meet us. Let us act
boldly and we shall have good sport." His men said that this fellow had
great confidence in himself to run into their hands; but that he who asked
should have. Then they got off their horses. Grettir came up to them and laid
hold of a bag of clothes which Gisli had behind him on his saddle, saying:
"I must have this; I often stoop to little things."
Gisli said: "You shall not; do not you know with whom you have to
do?"
Grettir said: "No; that is not so clear to me. Nor do I make much
difference between one man and another since I claim so little."
"May be it seems little to you," said Gisli; "but I would
sooner part with thirty hundred ells of wadmal. It seems that extortion is your
way. Go for him, boys! Let us see what he can do."
They obeyed. Grettir fell back a little and reached a stone which is still
standing by the side of the way and is called Grettishaf, where he stood at
bay. Gisli urged on his men, and Grettir saw that he was not quite so valiant
as he pretended to be, for he kept well behind them. Grettir got tired of being
hemmed in, so he made a lunge with his sword and killed one of Gisli's men,
sprang from his stone and assailed them so vigorously that Gisli fell back all
along the foot of the hill. Then his other man was killed.
Grettir said: "One would scarcely see that you have achieved much in
the world abroad, and you have shamefully forsaken your comrades."
Gisli answered: "The fire is hottest to him who is in it; it is ill
dealing with men from Hel."
They had exchanged few more blows when Gisli threw away his arms and bolted
right away along the foot of the mountain. Grettir gave him time to throw away
whatever he liked, and at every opportunity he threw off something more of his
clothes. Grettir never followed him so closely that there was not some distance
between them. He ran right away from the mountains, across Kaldardal, round
Aslaug's Cliff, above Kolbeinsstad and out to Borgarhraun.
By that time he had nothing left on him but his shirt, and was terribly
exhausted. Grettir still followed, keeping now within reach of him. He pulled
off a great branch. Gisli did not stop till he reached Haffjardara river, which
was all swollen and difficult to ford. Gisli was going right out into the river
when Grettir pressed forward and seized him and showed him the difference in
their strength.
Grettir got him down, sat on the top of him and asked: "Are you the
Gisli who wanted to meet Grettir?"
"I have found him now," he answered; "but I know not how I
shall part with him. Keep what you have taken and let me go free."
Grettir said: "You will not understand what I am going to tell you, so
I must give you something to remember it by." Then he pulled up Gisli's
shirt over his head and let the rod play on both sides of his back. Gisli
struggled to get away, but Grettir gave him a sound whipping and then let him
go. Gisli thought that he would sooner not learn anything from Grettir than
have another such flogging, nor did he do anything more to earn it. Directly he
got his feet under him again he ran off to a large pool and swam across the
river. In the evening he reached the settlement called Hrossholt, very
exhausted. There he lay for a week, his body covered with blisters, and
afterwards went on to his own place.
Grettir turned back, gathered up all the things which Gisli had thrown away
and took them home. Gisli never got them back again; many thought be had only
got what he deserved for his noisy boasting. Grettir made a verse about their
encounter:
"The horse whose fighting teeth are blunted
runs from the field before his foe.
With many an afterthought ran Gisli.
Gone is his fame, his glory lost!"
In the spring after this Gisli prepared to go on board his ship and forbade
in the strongest terms anything which belonged to him being carried South by
the way of the mountains; for he said that the Fiend himself was there. Gisli
when he went South to join his ship kept all the way along the coast and he
never met Grettir again. Nobody considered him worth thinking about, nor do we
hear any more of him in this saga. Grettir's relations with Thord the son of
Kolbeinn became worse than ever, and Thord tried every means to get Grettir
driven away or killed.
CHAPTER LX
THE BATTLE WITH THE MYRAMEN
When Grettir had been two winters in Fagraskogafjall and the third winter
had set in, he went South into Myrar to the farm called Laekjarbug, where he
took six wethers without their owner's permission. Then he went down to Akrar
and drove off two oxen for slaughter with several sheep, and went up South to
the Hitara. When the bondis heard of his exploits they sent word to Thord at
Hitarnes and asked him to take the lead in the slaying of Grettir. He was
rather reluctant, but as they had asked him he sent his son Arnor, afterwards
called Jarlsbard, to go with them, and told them not to let Grettir escape.
Messengers were then sent round to all the farms.
There was a man named Bjarni who dwelt in Jorvi in Flysjuhverfi. He
collected men on the other side of the Hitara; the intention was that each band
should keep on its own side. Grettir had two men with him, one named Eyjolf, a
stout man, the son of a bondi in Fagraskogar, and another. The party came on,
about twenty in number, under Thorarin from Akrar and Thorfinn of Laekjarbug.
Grettir tried to get out across the river, but was met by Arnor and Bjarni
coming from the coast. There was a narrow point jutting out into the river on
Grettir's side, and when he saw the men approaching he drove his animals on to
it, for he never would let go anything of which he had once got possession. The
Myramen prepared to attack in good order and Grettir told his companions to
guard his rear. They could not all come on at once. There was a hard struggle
between them; Grettir used his short sword with both hands and they found it
not easy to get at him. Some of the Myramen fell and some were wounded. The men
on the other side of the river were rather slow in coming up because there was
no ford near. Before they had been fighting very long they fell back. Thorarin
of Akrar was a very old man and not able to join in the fighting. When the
battle was over there came up his son Thrand, his brother Ingjald's son
Thorgils, Finnbogi the son of Thorgeir, the son of Thorhadd of Hitardal, and
Steinolf the son of Thorleif of Hraundal. They set on their men and there was a
hard struggle.
Grettir saw that there was no choice left but either to flee or else to do
his utmost and not spare himself. He pressed on hard and nothing could hold
against him, for his foes were so numerous that there was no chance of escaping
except by fighting to the last before he fell. He tried always to engage those
who seemed most courageous; first he went for Steinolf of Hraundal and cleft
his skull down to his shoulders; then he struck at Thorgils the son of Ingjald
and almost cut him in two. Then Thrand tried to spring forward and avenge his
kinsmen, and Grettir hewed at his right thigh, cutting out all the muscles so
that he could fight no more. Next he gave Finnbogi a severe wound. Then
Thorarin ordered them off. "The longer you fight," he said, "the
worse you will get from him and the more will he choose out the men from your
company."
They obeyed and fell back. Ten had fallen; five were wounded to death or
crippled, and nearly all who had been in the battle were hurt. Grettir was
terribly fatigued but little wounded. The Myramen drew off, having suffered
heavy losses, for many a good man had fallen. Those who were beyond the river
came over slowly and did not arrive till the fight was over, and when they saw
the plight of their men Arnor would not risk himself any further, for which he
was much blamed by his father and by others. Men thought he was not much of a
warrior. The place where they fought is now called Grettisoddi.
Grettir and his companions were all wounded; they took their horses and rode
back along the foot of the mountain. When they reached Fagraskogar Eyjolf was
behind. There was a bondi's daughter there and she asked for their tidings,
which Grettir told her fully and spoke a verse:
"Goddess of horn-floods! Steinolf's wounds
are such that scarcely may be healed.
Of Thorgils' life is little hope;
his bones are smashed; eight more are dead."
Then Grettir went to his retreat and spent the winter there.
CHAPTER LXI
GRETTIR WINTERS UNDER THE GEITLAND GLACIER
The next time that Bjorn met Grettir he told him that this was a very
serious affair, and that he would not be able to stay there in peace much
longer. "You have killed kinsmen and friends of mine, but I will not
depart from my promise to you so long as you are here."
Grettir said he was sorry to have given him offence, but that he had to
defend his hands and his life. Bjorn said it would have to remain so. Soon
there came to him some of the men who had lost their kinsmen through Grettir
and petitioned him not to allow such a ruffian as he was to stay there any
longer and molest them. Bjorn said he would do as they desired directly the
winter was over.
Thrand the son of Thorarin of Akrar had now recovered from his wound. He was
a man of much worth, and had married Steinunn the daughter of Hrut of Kambsnes.
Steinolf's father Thorleif of Hraundal was a great man; from him are sprung the
Hraundal men.
No more meetings are told of between Grettir and the Myramen while he was in
the mountains. Bjorn continued in friendship with him, but some of Bjorn's
other friends fell away from him because of his allowing Grettir to remain
there, for they were annoyed at getting no compensation for the slaying of
their kinsmen. When the Thing assembled Grettir left the Myrar district and
went to Borgarfjord, where he visited Grim the son of Thorhall and sought
counsel of him where he should move to next. Grim said he was not powerful
enough to keep him there, so Grettir went off to his friend Hallmund and stayed
there till the end of the summer.
In the autumn Grettir went to Geitland, where he stayed till bright weather
set in. Then he ascended the Geitlandsjokull and turned his steps South-east
along the glacier, taking with him a kettle and fuel. It is supposed that he
went there by the counsel of Hallmund, who knew the country far and wide. He
went on till he came to a long and rather narrow valley in the glacier, shut in
on every side by the ice which overhung the valley. He went about everywhere,
and found fair grass-grown banks and brushwood. There were hot springs, and it
seemed as if volcanic fires had kept the ice from closing in above the valley.
A little stream flowed down the dale with smooth banks on either side. Little
did the light of the sun enter there, and the number of sheep in the valley
seemed to him countless. They were much better and fatter than any which he had
ever seen.
Grettir stayed there and built himself a hut out of logs which he found
about. He caught a sheep to eat, and it was better for slaughter than two in
other places. There was a ewe there with her lamb; she had a brown head and
excelled all the others in size. He was anxious to have the lamb, so he caught
it and slaughtered it and got half a measure of suet out of it, and it was
better in every way. When Brownhead missed her lamb she came up every night to
Grettir's hut and bleated so that he never could get any sleep. He regretted
much having killed the lamb on account of the disturbance which she caused him.
Every evening when the twilight set in he heard a voice calling in the valley,
and then the sheep used to run together into a place of shelter. Grettir has
told us that a blending ruled over the valley, a giant named Thorir, under
whose protection he remained. Grettir called the valley after him Thorisdal. He
said that Thorir had daughters with whom he had some play, and that they were
very pleased, because not many people came there. And when the days of fasting
came Grettir remembered to tell them that fat and liver should be eaten in Lent.
Nothing particular occurred that winter, and Grettir found it so dull that he
could not stay there any longer. He left the valley and went to the South
through the glacier, reaching the middle of Skjaldbreid from the North. There
he took up a stone, cut a hole in it and said that if a man put his eye to the
hole he could see into the gully which flows out of Thorisdal. Then he went
across the country South and reached the eastern fjords. He spent the summer
and the winter on this journey and visited all the great men, but found them
all against him so that nowhere could he get lodging or shelter. So he returned
to the North and stayed in various places.
CHAPTER LXII
HALLMUND IS KILLED BY A FOREST-MAN NAMED GRIM
Soon after Grettir had left the Arnarvatn Heath there came a man there named
Grim, the son of a widow at Kropp. He had killed the son of Eid of Ass, the son
of Skeggi, and been outlawed for it. So there he stayed where Grettir had been
before him and got plenty of fish out of the lake. Hallmund was not at all
pleased at Grim being there instead of Grettir, and said that he should have
little advantage from his great catches of fish. One morning Grim had caught a
hundred fish, which he brought to the hut and arranged outside. The next
morning when he went there every fish was gone. He thought it very strange, but
returned to the lake and caught this time two hundred. He carried them home and
arranged them; again everything happened as before; in the morning all were
gone, evidently through the same agency as before. The third day he caught
three hundred, carried them home and kept a watch on his hut. He looked out
through a hole in the door to see if any one came, and so he remained for a
time. When about one third of the night had passed he heard some one walking
near and stepping rather heavily; so he immediately took his axe, which was
very sharp, and wanted to know what was the matter. There came a man with a big
basket on his back; he put it down and looked round, but saw no one outside. He
rummaged about among the fish and seemed to think that they would do for him to
lay hands upon. He threw them all into his basket and they quite filled it. The
fishes were so large that Grim thought no horse would be able to carry more.
This man then took the load and got beneath it. Just as he was about to rise
Grim rushed out and taking his axe in both hands struck a blow at his neck
which went through the skin. He started in surprise and then ran off towards
the south of the hill with his basket. Grim went after him to see whether he
had got him. They went south along the foot of the Balljokull where the man
entered a cave. There was a bright fire in the cave and a woman standing in it,
very tall but shapely. Grim heard her greet her father, calling him Hallmund.
He flung down his load and heaved a great sigh. She asked why he was covered
with blood. He answered in a verse:
"No man, I see, may trust his might.
His luck and heart will fail at death."
Then she pressed him to say what had happened, and he told her everything.
"Hear now," he said, "what I tell you of my adventure. I will
tell it to you in verse, and you shall cut it in runes on a staff."
She did so, and he spoke the Hallmundarkvida, in which the following occurs:
"I was strong when Grettir's bridle I seized
I saw him gazing long at his palms.
Then Thorir came on the Heath with his men.
'Gainst eighty we two had play with our spears.
Grettir's hands knew how to strike;
much deeper the marks that were left by mine.
Arms and heads then flew as they tried
to gain my rear; eighteen of them fell.
The giant-kind and the grim rock-dwellers,
demons and blendings fell before me,
elves and devils have felt my hand."
Many exploits of his did Hallmund recount in the lay, for he had been in every
land.
The daughter said: "That man was not going to let his catch slip away
from him. It was only to be expected, for you treated him very badly. But who
is going to avenge you?"
"It is not certain that anybody will, but I think that Grettir would avenge
me if he were able. It will not be easy to go against this man's luck; he is
destined to great things." Then as the lay continued his strength began to
fail. Hallmund died almost at the moment when he finished the song. She grieved
much for him and wept sorely. Then Grim came forward and bade her be comforted.
"All," he said, "must depart when their fate calls. It was
partly his own fault, for I could not look on and see myself robbed."
She said he might speak much about that: "The unjust man prospers
ill."
She was somewhat cheered by the talk with him. Grim stayed several nights in
the cave and learned the lay; all went well with them. Grim was in the
Arnarvatn Heath all the winter after Hallmund's death. Afterwards Thorkell the
son of Eyjolf came to the heath and fought with him. The meeting ended by Grim
having Thorkell's life in his power, but he would not kill him. Thorkell then
took him in, sent him abroad and supplied him with means; each was considered
to have acted generously towards the other. Grim became a great traveller and
there is a long saga about him.
CHAPTER LXIII
GRETTIR'S MEETING WITH THORIR ON THE REYKJA HEATH
We now return to Grettir, who came from the eastern fjords, travelling in
disguise and hiding his head because he did not wish to meet Thorir. That
summer he spent in Modrudal Heath and other places. For a time too he was on
Reykja Heath. Thorir heard of his being on Reykja Heath, gathered his men and
rode thither, determined not to let him escape. Grettir scarcely knew of their
plans before they came upon him. He was in a hill-dairy a little off the road
with another man, and when they saw the troop they had to lay their plans
quickly. Grettir said they should make their horses lie down inside the house, and
they did so. Thorir rode forward across the heath in a northerly direction,
missed the place, did not find Grettir and turned back home. When the troop had
ridden round to the West, Grettir said: "They will not be pleased with
their expedition if they do not meet me. You stay and mind the horses while I
go after them. It would be a good jest if they did not recognise me."
His companion tried to dissuade him, but he would go. He changed his dress,
put on a wide hat which came down over his face and took a stick in his hand.
Then he went along the road towards them. They addressed him and asked whether
he had seen any men riding over the heath.
"I have seen the men whom you are seeking," he said, "you
very nearly came upon them; they were on your left hand just south of the
marshes."
On hearing this they galloped off towards the marshes, which were so swampy
that they could not get through and had to spend a great part of the day
dragging their horses out. They swore much at the supposed traveller for playing
a practical joke upon them. Grettir returned speedily home to his companion,
and when they met spoke a verse:
"I will not ride to the warriors' arms;
too great the danger is.
I dare not meet the storm of Vidri;
but homeward turn my steps."
They rode off as fast as they could westwards towards the homestead in Gard
before Thorir could come there with his company. When they were near the place
they met a man on the road who did not know them. There was a young woman
standing outside, very much dressed up, and Grettir asked who she was. The man
who had come up said she was Thorir's daughter. Then Grettir spoke a verse:
"Maiden, when thy father comes
tell him, little though it please him,
how I rode his dwelling past;
only two who with me rode."
From this the man learnt who it was, and rode to the house to tell them that
Grettir had come round. When Thorir returned many men thought that he had been
bamboozled by Grettir. He then set spies to watch Grettir's movements. Grettir
took the precaution of sending his companion to the western districts with his
horse, while he himself went North into the mountains at the beginning of the
winter, muffling up his face so that no one should recognise him. Every one
thought that Thorir had fared no better but even worse than at their former
encounter.
CHAPTER LXIV
GHOSTS IN BARDARDAL
There was dwelling at Eyjardalsa in Bardardal a priest named Steinn, a good
farmer and wealthy. His son Kjartan was grown up and was now a fine young man.
Thorsteinn the White was a man who dwelt at Sandhaugar to the south of
Eyjardalsa; his wife Steinvor was young and of a merry disposition. They had
children who at this time were yet young. Their place was generally thought to
be much haunted by trolls. Two winters before Grettir came North into those
parts, Steinvor the mistress of Sandhaugar went as usual to spend Yule at
Eyjardalsa, while her husband stayed at home. Men lay down to sleep in the
evening, and in the night they heard a great noise in the room near the bondi's
bed. No one dared to get up to see what was the matter because there were so
few of them. The mistress of the house returned home the next morning, but her
husband had disappeared and no one knew what had become of him. So the next
season passed. The following winter the mistress wanted to go to mass, and told
her servant to stay at home; he was very unwilling but said she should be
obeyed. It happened just as before; this time the servant disappeared. People
thought it very strange and found some drops of blood upon the outer door, so
they supposed that some evil spirit must have carried off both the men. The
story spread all through the district and came to the ears of Grettir, who
being well accustomed to deal with ghosts and spectres turned his steps to Bardardal
and arrived at Yule-eve at Sandhaugar. He retained his disguise and called
himself Gest. The lady of the house saw that he was enormously tall, and the
servants were terribly afraid of him. He asked for hospitality; the mistress
told him that food was ready for him but that he must see after himself. He
said he would, and added: "I will stay in the house while you go to mass
if you would like it."
She said: "You must be a brave man to venture to stay in the
house."
"I do not care for a monotonous life," he said.
Then she said: "I do not want to remain at home, but I cannot get
across the river."
"I will come with you," said Gest. Then she made ready to go to
mass with her little daughter. It was thawing outside; the river was flooded
and was covered with ice. She said: "It is impossible for either man or
horse to cross the river."
"There must be fords," said Gest; "do not be afraid."
"First carry the maiden over," she said; "she is
lighter."
"I don't want to make two journeys of it," said he; "I will
carry you in my arms."
She crossed herself and said: "That is impossible; what will you do
with the girl?"
"I will find a way," he said, taking them both up and setting the
girl on her mother's knee as he bore them both on his left arm, keeping his
right arm free. So he carried them across. They were too frightened to cry out.
The river came up to his breast, and a great piece of ice drove against him,
which he pushed off with the hand that was free. Then the stream became so deep
that it broke over his shoulder, but he waded on vigorously till he reached the
other bank and put them on shore. It was nearly dark by the time he got home to
Sandhaugar and called for some food. When he had eaten something he told the
servants to go to the other end of the hall. Then he got some boards and loose
logs and laid them across the hall to make a great barricade so that none of
the servants could get across. No one dared to oppose him or to object to
anything. The entrance was in the side wall of the hall under the back gable,
and near it was a cross bench upon which Grettir laid himself, keeping on his
clothes, with a light burning in the room. So he lay till into the night.
The mistress reached Eyjardalsa for mass and every one wondered how she had
crossed the river. She said she did not know whether it was a man or a troll
who had carried her over. The priest said it was certainly a man though unlike
other men. "Let us keep silence over it; may be that he means to help you
in your difficulties."
She stayed there the night.
CHAPTER LXV
ADVENTURE WITH A TROLL-WOMAN
We return now to tell of Gest. Towards midnight he heard a loud noise
outside, and very soon there walked a huge troll-wife into the room. She
carried a trough in one hand and a rather large cutlass in the other. She
looked round the room as she entered, and on seeing Gest lying there she rushed
at him; he started up and attacked her furiously. They fought long together;
she was the stronger but he evaded her skilfully. Everything near them and the panelling
of the back wall were broken to pieces. She dragged him through the hall door
out to the porch, where he resisted vigorously. She wanted to drag him out of
the house, but before that was done they had broken up all the fittings of the
outer door and borne them away on their shoulders. Then she strove to get to
the river and among the rocks. Gest was terribly fatigued, but there was no
choice but either to brace himself or be dragged down to the rocks. All night
long they struggled together, and he thought he had never met with such a
monster for strength. She gripped him so tightly to herself that he could do
nothing with either hand but cling to her waist. When at last they reached a
rock by the river he swung the monster round and got his right hand loose. Then
he quickly seized the short sword which he was wearing, drew it and struck at
the troll's right shoulder, cutting off her right arm and releasing himself.
She sprang among the rocks and disappeared in the waterfall. Gest, very stiff
and tired, lay long by the rock. At daylight he went home and lay down on his
bed, blue and swollen all over.
When the lady of the house came home she found the place rather in disorder.
She went to Gest and asked him what had happened, and why everything was broken
to pieces. He told her everything just as it had happened. She thought it a
matter of great moment and asked him who he was. He told her the truth, said
that he wished to see a priest and asked her to send for one. She did so;
Steinn came to Sandhaugar and soon learnt that it was Grettir the son of Asmund
who had come there under the name of Gest. The priest asked him what he thought
had become of the men who had disappeared; Grettir said he thought that they
must have gone among the rocks. The priest said he could not believe his word
unless he gave some evidence of it. Grettir said that later it would be known,
and the priest went home. Grettir lay many days in his bed and the lady did all
she could for him; thus Yule-tide passed. Grettir himself declared that the
trollwoman sprang among the rocks when she was wounded, but the men of
Bardardal say that the day dawned upon her while they were wrestling; that when
he cut off her arm she broke, and that she is still standing there on the
mountain in the likeness of a woman. The dwellers in the valley kept Grettir
there in hiding.
One day that winter after Yule Grettir went to Eyjardalsa and met the
priest, to whom he said: "I see, priest, that you have little belief in
what I say. Now I wish you to come with me to the river and to see what
probability there is in it."
The priest did so. When they reached the falls they saw a cave up under the
rock. The cliff was there so abrupt that no one could climb it, and nearly ten
fathoms down to the water. They had a rope with them. The priest said: "It
is quite impossible for any one to get down to that."
Grettir answered: "It is certainly possible; and men of high mettle are
those who would feel themselves happiest there. I want to see what there is in
the fall. Do you mind the rope."
The priest said he could do so if he chose. He drove a stake into the ground
and laid stones against it.
CHAPTER LXVI
GRETTIR SLAYS A GIANT
Grettir now fastened a stone in a loop at the end of the rope, and lowered
it from above into the water.
"Which way do you mean to go?" asked the priest.
"I don't mean to be bound when I come into the fall," Grettir
said. "So my mind tells me."
Then he prepared to go; he had few clothes on and only a short sword; no
other arms. He jumped from a rock and got down to the fall. The priest saw the
soles of his feet but after that did not know what had become of him. Grettir
dived beneath the fall. It was very difficult swimming because of the currents,
and he had to dive to the bottom to get behind the fall. There was a rock where
he came up, and a great cave under the fall in front of which the water poured.
He went into the cave, where there was a large fire burning and a horrible
great giant most fearful to behold sitting before it. On Grettir entering the
giant sprang up, seized a pike and struck at him, for he could both strike and
thrust with it. It had a wooden shaft and was of the kind called
"heptisax." Grettir struck back with his sword and cut through the
shaft. Then the giant tried to reach up backwards to a sword which was hanging
in the cave, and at that moment Grettir struck at him and cut open his lower
breast and stomach so that all his entrails fell out into the river and floated
down the stream. The priest who was sitting by the rope saw some debris being
carried down all covered with blood and lost his head, making sure that Grettir
was killed. He left the rope and ran off home, where he arrived in the evening
and told them for certain that Grettir was dead, and said it was a great
misfortune to them to have lost such a man.
Grettir struck few more blows at the giant before he was dead. He then
entered the cave, kindled a light and explored. It is not told how much
treasure he found there, but there is supposed to have been some. He stayed
there till late into the night and found the bones of two men, which he carried
away in a skin. Then he came out of the cave, swam to the rope and shook it,
thinking the priest was there; finding him gone he had to swarm up the rope and
so reached the top. He went home to Eyjardalsa and carried the skin with the
bones in it into the vestibule of the church together with a rune-staff, upon
which were most beautifully carved the following lines:
"Into the fall of the torrent I went;
dank its maw towards me gaped.
The floods before the ogress' den
Mighty against my shoulder played";
and then:
"Hideous the friend of troll-wife came.
Hard were the blows I dealt upon him.
The shaft of Heptisax was severed.
My sword has pierced the monster's breast."
There too it was told how Grettir had brought the bones from the cave. The
priest when he came to the church on the next morning found the staff and all
that was with it and read the runes. Grettir had then returned home to
Sandhaugar.
CHAPTER LXVII
VISIT TO GUDMUND THE MIGHTY
When the priest met Grettir again he asked him to say exactly what bad
happened, and Grettir told him all about where he had been. He said that the
priest had held the rope very faithlessly, and the priest admitted that it was
true. Men felt no doubt that these monsters were responsible for the
disappearance of the men in the valley, nor was there any haunting or
ghost-walking there afterwards; Grettir had evidently cleared the land of them.
The bones were buried by the priest in the churchyard. Grettir stayed the
winter in Bardardal, but unknown to the general public.
Thorir of Gard heard rumours of Grettir being in Bardardal and set some men
on to take his life. Men thereupon advised him to depart, and he went into the
West to Modruvellir, where he met Gudmund the Mighty and asked him for
protection. Gudmund said it would not be convenient for him to take him in.
"You must," he said, "find a place to settle in where you
need be in no fear for your life."
Grettir said he did not know where such a place was.
"There is an island," Gudmund said, "in Skagafjord, called
Drangey. It is excellent for defence; no one can get up to it without a ladder.
If once you can reach it there is no chance of any one attacking you there with
arms or with craft, so long as you guard the ladder well."
"That shall be tried," said Grettir. "But I am in such dread
of the dark that even for the sake of my life I cannot live alone."
"It may be that it is so," said Gudmund; "but trust no man so
well that you trust not yourself better. Many are unfit to be trusted."
Grettir thanked him for his excellent advice and departed from Modruvellir.
He went on straight to Bjarg, where his mother and Illugi greeted him joyfully.
He stayed there several days and heard of Thorsteinn Kuggason having been slain
in the autumn before he went to Bardardal. Fate, he thought, was striking hard
against him. Then he rode South to Holtavarda Heath, intending to revenge the
death of Hallmund if he could meet with Grim. On reaching Nordrardal he learnt
that Grim had left two or three years before, as has already been related.
Grettir had not received news of it because he had been in hiding there for two
years and a third in Thorisdal and had met no one to tell him of what had
happened. Then he turned his steps towards the Breidafjord valleys and waylaid
those who passed over Brattabrekka. He continued to let his hands sweep over
the property of the small farmers during the height of the summer season.
When the summer was passing away, Steinvor at Sandhaugar gave birth to a son
who was named Skeggi. He was at first fathered on Kjartan, the son of Steinn
the priest at Eyjardalsa. Skeggi was unlike all his family in his strength and
stature. When he was fifteen years old he was the strongest man in the North,
and then they put him down to Grettir. There seemed a prospect of his growing
into something quite extraordinary, but he died when he was seventeen and there
is no saga about him.
CHAPTER LXVIII
FIGHT WITH THORODD THE SON OF SNORRI
After the death of Thorsteinn Kuggason, Snorri the Godi was on bad terms
with his son Thorodd and with Sam the son of Bork the Fat. It is not clearly
stated what they had done to displease him except that they had refused to
undertake some important work which he had given them to do; what is known is
that Snorri turned off his son Thorodd and told him not to come back until he
had slain some forest-man, and so it remained. Thorodd then went to Dalir.
There dwelt at Breidabolstad in Sokkolfsdal a certain widow named Geirlaug; she
kept as her shepherd a grown-up youth who had been outlawed for wounding some
one. Thorodd Snorrason heard of this, rode to Breidabolstad and asked where the
shepherd was. The woman said he was with the sheep and asked what Thorodd
wanted with him.
"I want to take his life," he said; "he is an outlaw and a
forest-man."
She said: "Such a warrior as you has nothing to gain by killing a
miserable creature like him. I will show you a much doughtier deed, should you
have a mind to try it."
"What is that?" he asked.
"Up there in the mountains," she said, "is Grettir the son of
Asmund; deal with him; that will be more fitting for you."
Thorodd liked the proposal and said he would do it. Then he put spurs to his
horse and rode up along the valleys. On reaching the hills below the Austra
river he saw a light-coloured horse saddled, with a big man in armour, and at
once directed his steps towards them. Grettir hailed him and asked who he was.
Thorodd told his name and asked: "Why do you not rather ask my business
than my name?"
"Because," he said, "it is not likely to be very weighty. Are
you a son of Snorri the Godi?"
"So it is indeed; we shall now try which of us is the stronger."
"That is easily done," said Grettir, "but have you not heard
that I have not proved a mound of wealth to most of those who have had to do
with me?"
"I know that; but I mean to risk something on it now."
Then he drew his sword and went valiantly for Grettir, who defended himself
with his shield but would not use his weapons against Thorodd. They fought for
a time without his being wounded. Grettir then said:
"Let us stop this play; you will not gain the victory in a battle with
me."
Thorodd struck at him most furiously. Grettir was tired of it, so he took
hold of him and set him down next to himself, saying: "I could do what I
liked with you; but I have no fear of your killing me. I am much more afraid of
your grey-headed father, Snorri the Godi, and of his counsels, which have
brought many a man to his knees. You should take up tasks which you are able to
accomplish; it is no child's play to fight with me."
When Thorodd saw that there was nothing to be done he quieted down, and then
they parted. He rode home to Tunga and told his father of his encounter witb
Grettir. Snorri smiled and said: "Many a man has a high opinion of
himself; but the odds against you were too great. While you were aiming blows
at him he was doing what he pleased with you. But he was wise not to kill you,
for it would not have been my purpose to leave you unavenged. I will now rather
use my influence on his side if I ever have to do with his affairs."
Snorri showed his approval of Grettir's action towards Thorodd, for his
counsels were always friendly to Grettir.
CHAPTER LXIX
GRETTIR'S LAST VISIT TO BJARG AND JOURNEY WITH ILLUGI TO DRANGEY
Soon after Thorodd left him Grettir rode North to Bjarg and remained there
in hiding for a time. His fear of the dark grew so upon him that he dared go
nowhere after dusk. His mother offered to keep him there, but said she saw that
it would not do for him because of the feuds which he had throughout the land.
Grettir said she should not fall into trouble through him, "but," he
said, "I can no longer live alone even to save my life."
Illugi his brother was then fifteen years old and was a most goodly young
man. He heard what they were saying. Grettir told his mother what Gudmund the
Mighty had advised him to do, and declared he would try to get to Drangey if he
could. Yet, he said, he could not go there unless he could find some faithful
man to stay with him. Then Illugi said: "I will go with you, brother. I
know not whether I shall be a support to you, but I will be faithful to you and
will not run from you so long as you stand upright. And I shall know the better
how it fares with you if I am with you."
Grettir answered: "You are such an one amongst men as I most rejoice
in. And if my mother be not against it I would indeed that you should go with
me."
Asdis then said: "It has now come to this, that I see two difficulties
meeting each other. It is hard for me to lose Illugi, but I know that so much
may be said for Grettir's condition that he will find some way out. And though
it is much for one to bid farewell to both of you, yet I will consent to it if
Grettir's lot is bettered thereby."
Illugi was pleased at her words, for his heart was set upon going with
Grettir. She gave them plenty of money to take with them and they made ready
for their journey. Asdis took them along the road, and before they parted she
said: "Go forth now, my sons twain. Sad will be your death together, nor
may any man escape that which is destined for him. I shall see neither of you
again; let one fate befall you both. I know not what safety you seek in
Drangey, but there shall your bones be laid, and many will begrudge you your
living there. Beware of treachery; yet shall you be smitten with weapons, for
strange are the dreams which I have had. Guard yourselves against witchcraft,
for few things are stronger than the ancient spells."
Thus she spoke and wept much. Grettir said: "Weep not, my mother. It
shall be said that you had sons and not daughters if we are attacked with arms.
Live well, and farewell."
Then they parted. The two travelled North through the districts and visited
their kinsmen while the autumn passed into winter. Then they turned their steps
to Skagafjord, then North to Vatnsskard on to Reykjaskard below Saemundarhlid
to Langholt, reaching Glaumbaer as the day was waning. Grettir had slung his
hat over his shoulder; so he always went when out of doors whether the weather
was good or bad. Thence they continued their journey, and when they had gone a
short way they met a man with a big head, tall and thin and ill clad. He
greeted them and each asked the other's name. They told theirs and he said his
name was Thorbjorn. He was a vagrant, had no mind to work and swaggered much.
It was the habit of some to make game of him or fool him. He became very
familiar and told them much gossip about the district and the people therein.
Grettir was much amused. He asked whether they did not want a man to work for
them and said he would much like to go with them. So much he got from his talk
that they let him join them. It was very cold and there was a driving
snow-storm. As the man was so fussy and talkative they gave him a nickname and
called him Glaum.
"The people in Glaumbaer," he said, "were much exercised
about your going without a hat in this weather, and wanted to know whether you
were any the braver for being proof against the cold. There were two sons of
bondis there, men of great distinction; the shepherd told them to come out and
mind the sheep with him, but they could scarcely get their clothes on for the
cold."
Grettir said: "I saw a young man inside the door putting on his
mittens, and another going between the cow-house and the dung- heap. Neither of
them will frighten me."
Then they went on to Reynines and stayed the night there; then to the
sea-shore to a farm called Reykir where a man, a good farmer, named Thorvald,
lived. Grettir asked him for shelter and told him of his intention of going to
Drangey. The bondi said that men of Skagafjord would not think his a very
friendly visit and drew back. Then Grettir took the purse of money which his
mother had given him and gave it to the bondi. The man's brows unbent when he
saw the money and he told three of his servants to take them out in the night
by the moonlight. From Reykir is the shortest distance to the island, about one
sea-mile.
When they reached the island Grettir thought it looked quite pleasant; it
was all overgrown with grass and had steep cliffs down to the sea so that no
one could get on to it except where the ladders were. If the upper ladder was
pulled up it was impossible for any one to get on to the island. There was also
a large crag full of sea birds in the summer, and there were eighty sheep in
the island belonging to the bondis, mostly rams and ewes, which were meant for
slaughter.
There Grettir quietly settled down. He had been fifteen or sixteen years an
outlaw, so Sturla the son of Thord has recorded.
CHAPTER LXX
THE PEOPLE OF SKAGAFJORD
When Grettir came to Drangey the following chiefs were in Skagafjord:
Hjalti lived at Hof in Hjaltadal, the son of Thord, the son of Hjalti, the
son of Thord Skalp. He was a great chief, very distinguished and very popular.
His brother was named Thorbjorn Angle, a big man, strong and hardy and rather quarrelsome.
Thord their father had married in his old age, and his then wife was not the
mother of these two. She was very much against her stepsons, especially
Thorbjorn, because he was intractable and headstrong. One day when he was
playing at "tables", his stepmother came up and saw that he was
playing at "hnettafl"; they played with big peg pieces. She
considered that very lazy of him and spoke some words to which he answered
hastily. She took up the piece and struck him on the cheek bone with the peg,
and it glanced into his eye which hung down on his cheek. He started up and
handled her mercilessly so that she was confined to her bed and soon afterwards
died; they say that she was pregnant at the time. After that he became a
regular ruffian. He took over his property and went first to live in Vidvik.
Halldor the son of Thorgeir, the son of Thord of Hofdi, lived at Hof in
Hofdastrand. He married Thordis the daughter of Thord, the sister of Hjalti and
Thorbjorn Angle. Halldor was a worthy bondi and wealthy.
Bjorn was the name of a man who lived at Haganes in Fljot, a friend of
Halldor of Hof, and the two held together in every dispute.
Tungu-Steinn dwelt at Steinsstadir. He was the son of Bjorn, the son of
Ofeig Thinbeard, the son of Crow-Hreidar, to whom Eirik of Guddal gave Tunga
below Skalamyr. He was a man of renown.
Eirik was the son of Holmgang-Starri, the son of Eirik of Guddal, the son of
Hroald, the son of Geirmund Straightbeard. He lived at Hof in Guddal.
All these were men of high rank. Two brothers dwelt at a place called Breida
in Slettahlid, both named Thord. They were very strong men, but peaceable.
All the men now named had a share in Drangey. It is said that the island was
owned by no fewer than twenty men, and none of them would part with his share
to the others. The largest share belonged to the sons of Thord since they were
the richest.
CHAPTER LXXI
THE BONDIS CLAIM THEIR PROPERTY IN DRANGEY
Midwinter was passed, and the bondis prepared to bring in their animals from
the island for slaughter. They manned a boat and each had a man of his own on
board, some two.
When they reached the island they saw men on it moving about. They thought
it very strange, but supposed that some one had been wrecked and had gone on
shore there. So they rowed to where the ladders were. The people on the shore
pulled the ladders up. This seemed very strange behaviour and they hailed the
men and asked who they were. Grettir told his name and those of his companions.
The bondis asked who had taken them out to the island.
Grettir answered: "He brought me out who took me here, and had hands,
and was more my friend than yours."
The bondis said: "Let us take our animals and come to the land with us.
You shall have freely whatever you have taken of our property."
Grettir said: "That is a good offer; but each of us shall have that
which he has got. I may tell you at once that hence I go not, unless I am dead
or dragged away; nor will I let go that which my hands have taken."
The bondis said no more, but thought that most unhappy visitors had come to
Drangey. They offered money and made many fair promises, but Grettir refused
them all, and so they had to return home much disgusted, having accomplished
nothing. They told all the people of the district of the wolves who had come
into the island. This had come upon them unawares and nothing could be done.
They talked it over that winter but could think of no way of getting Grettir
out of the island.
CHAPTER LXXII
GRETTIR VISITS THE THING AT HEGRANES
The time passed on until the spring, when men assembled at the Hegranes
Thing. They came in great numbers from all the districts under its
jurisdiction, and stayed there a long time, both palavering and merry-making,
for there were many who loved merriment in the country round.
When Grettir heard that everybody had gone to the Thing he laid a plan with
his friends, for he was always on good terms with those who were nearest to
him, and for them he spared nothing which he was able to get. He said he would
go to the land to get supplies and that Illugi and Glaum should remain behind.
Illugi thought it very imprudent but he let Grettir have his way. He told them
to guard the ladder well since everything depended upon that. Then he went to
the land and obtained what he wanted. He kept his disguise wherever he went and
no one knew that he had come. He heard of the festivities that were going on at
the Thing and was curious to see them, so he put on some old clothes that were
rather shabby and arrived just as they were going from the Logretta home to
their booths. Some of the young men were talking about the weather, said it was
good and fair, and that it would be a good thing to have some games and
wrestling; they thought it a good proposal. So they sat down in front of their
booths. The foremost men in the games were the sons of Thord. Thorbjorn Angle
was very uppish and was arranging everything himself for the sports. Every one
had to do as he bade, and he took them each by the shoulders and pushed them
into the field. The wrestling was begun by the less strong ones in pairs, and
there was great sport. When most of them had wrestled except the strongest,
there was much talk as to who should tackle the two Thords mentioned above, and
there was no one who would do it. They went round inviting men to wrestle, but
the more they asked the more their invitation was declined. Thorbjorn Angle
looked round and saw a big man sitting there, but could not clearly see his
face. He seized hold of him and gave a violent tug, but the man sat still and
did not move.
Thorbjorn said: "Nobody has held so firm against me to-day as you. But
who is this fellow?"
"My name is Gest."
Thorbjorn said: "You will be wanting to play with us. You are a welcome
Guest."
"Things may change quickly," he said. "I cannot join in your
games for I have no knowledge of them."
Many of them said that they would take it kindly of him if he, a stranger,
would play a little with the men. He asked what they wanted him to do, and they
asked him to wrestle with some one. He said he had given up wrestling, though
he once used to take pleasure in it. As he did not directly refuse they pressed
him all the more.
"Well," he said, "if you want to drag me in you must do one
thing for me and grant me peace here at the Thing until I reach my home."
They all shouted and said they would gladly do that. The man who was
foremost in urging that peace should be given was one Haf the son of Thorarin,
the son of Haf, the son of Thord Knapp, who had settled in the land between
Stifla in Fljot and Tungua. He lived at Knappsstad and was a man of many words.
He spoke in favour of the peace with great authority and said:
"Hereby do I declare PEACE between all men, in particular between this
man here seated who is named Gest and all Godord's men, full bondis, all men of
war and bearers of arms, all other men of this district of the Hegranes Thing
whencesoever they have come, both named and unnamed. I declare PEACE and full
Immunity in behoof of this newcomer to us unknown, Gest yclept, for the practice
of games, wrestling and all kinds of sport, while abiding here, and during his
journey home, whether he sail or whether he travel, whether by land or whether
by sea. He shall have PEACE in all places, named and unnamed, for such time as
he needeth to reach his home in safety, by our faith confirmed. And I establish
this PEACE on the part of ourselves and of our kinsmen, our friends and
belongings, alike of women and of men, bondsmen and thralls, youths and adults.
Be there any truce-breaker who shall violate this PEACE and defile this faith,
so be he rejected of God and expelled from the community of righteous men; be
he cast out from Heaven and from the fellowship of the holy; let him have no
part amongst mankind and become an outcast from society. A vagabond he shall be
and a wolf in places where Christians pray and where heathen worship, where
fire burneth, where the earth bringeth forth, where the child lispeth the name
of mother, where the mother beareth a son, where men kindle fire, where the
ship saileth, where shields blink, sun shineth, snow lieth, Finn glideth,
fir-tree groweth, falcon flieth the live-long day and the fair wind bloweth
straight under both her wings, where Heaven rolleth and earth is tilled, where
the breezes waft mists to the sea, where corn is sown. Far shall he dwell from
church and Christian men, from the sons of the heathen, from house and cave and
from every home, in the torments of Hel. At PEACE we shall be, in concord
together, each with other in friendly mind, wherever we meet, on mountain or
strand, on ship or on snow- shoes, on plains or on glaciers, at sea or on
horseback, as friends meet in the water, or brothers by the way, each at PEACE
with other, as son with father, or father with son, in all our dealings.
"Our hands we lay together, all and every to hold well the PEACE and
the words we have spoken in this our faith, in the presence of God and of holy
men, of all who hear my words and here are present."
Many said that a great word had been spoken. Gest said: "You have
declared and spoken well; if you go not back upon it, I will not delay to show
that of which I am capable."
Then he cast off his hood and after that all his upper garments. Each looked
at the other and woe spread over their lips; for they knew that it was Grettir
who had come to them, by his excelling all other men in stature and vigour. All
were silent and Haf looked foolish. The men of the district went two and two
together, each blaming the other, and most of all blaming him who had declared
the peace. Then Grettir said: "Speak plainly to me and declare what is in
your minds, for I will not sit here long without my clothes. You have more at
stake than I have, whether you hold the peace or not."
They answered little and sat themselves down. The sons of Thord and their
brother-in-law Halldor then talked together. Some wished to uphold the peace
and some not. Each nodded to the other. Then Grettir spoke a verse:
"Many a man is filled with doubt.
A twofold mask has the prover of shields.
The skilful tongue is put to shame.
They doubt if they shall hold the troth."
Then said Tungu-Steinn: "Think you so, Grettir? Which then will the
chieftains do? But true it is that you excel all men in courage. See you not
how they are putting their noses together?"
Grettir then said:
"Together they all their noses laid;
they wagged their beards in close converse.
They talked with each other by two and two,
regretting the peace they afore declared."
Then said Hjalti the son of Thord: "It shall not be so; we will hold
the peace with you although our minds have altered. I would not that men should
have the example of our having broken the peace which we ourselves gave and
declared. Grettir shall depart unhindered whithersoever he will, and shall have
peace till such time as he reach his home from this journey. And then this
truce shall have expired whatever happen with us." They all thanked him
for his speech, and thought he had acted as a chieftain should under such
circumstances. Thorbjorn Angle was silent. Then it was proposed that one or the
other of the Thords should close with Grettir, and he said that they might do
as they chose. One of the two brothers Thord then came forward. Grettir stood
upright before him and Thord went for him with all his might, but Grettir never
moved from his place. Then Grettir stretched over across his back and seizing
his breeches tripped up his foot and cast him backwards over his head so that
he fell heavily upon his shoulders. Then the people said that both the brothers
should tackle him together, and they did so. There arose a mighty tussle, each
in turn having the advantage, although Grettir always had one of them down. Now
one, now the other was brought to his knees or met with a reverse. So fiercely
they gripped that all of them were bruised and bloody. Everybody thought it
splendid sport, and when they ceased thanked them for their wrestling. Those
that were sitting near judged that the two together were no stronger than
Grettir alone, although each had the strength of two strong men. They were so
equal that when they strove together neither gained the advantage. Grettir did
not stay long at the Thing. The bondis asked him to give up the island, but
this he refused to do, and they accomplished nothing.
Grettir returned to Drangey where Illugi rejoiced much at seeing him again.
They stayed there in peace and Grettir told them of his journeys; so the summer
passed. All thought the men of Skagafjord had acted most honourably in
upholding their peace, and from this may be seen what trusty men lived in those
days, after all that Grettir had done against them. The less wealthy ones among
the bondis began to talk amongst themselves and say that there was little
profit in keeping a small share of the island, and now offered to sell their
holdings to the sons of Thord, but Hjalti said he did not want to buy them. The
bondis stipulated that any one who wanted to buy a share should either kill
Grettir or get him away. Thorbjorn Angle said that he was ready to take the
lead, and would spare no pains to attack Grettir if they would pay him for it.
Hjalti his brother resigned to him his share of the island because Thorbjorn
was the more violent and was unpopular. Several other bondis did the same, so
that Thorbjorn Angle got a large part of the island at a small price, but he
bound himself to get Grettir away.
CHAPTER LXXIII
VISIT OF THORBJORN ANGLE TO DRANGEY
At the end of the summer Thorbjorn Angle went with a boat fully manned to
Drangey. Grettir and his party came forward on the cliff and they talked
together. Thorbjorn begged Grettir to do so much for his asking as to quit the
island. Grettir said there was not much hope of that. Thorbjorn said: "It
may be that I can give you some assistance which will make it worth your while
to do this. Many of the bondis have now given up the shares which they had in
the island to me."
Grettir said: "Now for the very reason that you have just told me,
because you own the greater part of the island, I am determined never to go
hence. We may now divide the cabbage. It is true that I thought it irksome to
have the whole of Skagafjord against me, but now neither need spare the other,
since neither is suffocated with the love of his fellows. You may as well put
off your journeys hither, for the matter is settled so far as I am
concerned."
"All abide their time," he said, "and you abide evil."
"I must risk that," he said. And so they parted. Thorbjorn
returned home again.
CHAPTER LXXIV
THE FIRE GOES OUT IN DRANGEY
Grettir had, it is said, been two years in Drangey, and they had slaughtered
nearly all the sheep. One ram, it is told, they allowed to live; it was grey
below and had large horns. They had much sport with it, for it was very tame
and would stand outside and follow them wherever they went. It came to the hut
in the evening and rubbed its horns against the door. They lived very
comfortably, having plenty to eat from the birds on the island and their eggs,
nor had they much trouble in gathering wood for fire. Grettir always employed
the man to collect the drift, and there were often logs cast ashore there which
he brought home for fuel. The brothers had no need to work beyond going to the
cliffs, which they did whenever they chose. The thrall began to get very slack
at his work; he grumbled much and was less careful than before. It was his duty
to mind the fire every night, and Grettir bade him be very careful of it as
they had no boat with them. One night it came to pass that the fire went out.
Grettir was very angry and said it would only be right that Glaum should have a
hiding. The thrall said he had a very poor life of it to have to lie there in
exile and be ill-treated and beaten if anything went wrong. Grettir asked
Illugi what was to be done, and he said he could think of nothing else but to
wait until a ship brought them some fire.
Grettir said that would be a very doubtful chance to wait for. "I will
venture it," he said, "and see whether I can reach the land."
"That is a desperate measure," said Illugi. "We shall be done
for if you miscarry."
"I shall not drown in the channel," he said. "I shall trust
the thrall less in future since he has failed in a matter of such moment to
us."
The shortest passage from the island to the mainland is one sea-mile.
CHAPTER LXXV
GRETTIR SWIMS TO THE MAINLAND FOR FIRE
Grettir then prepared for his swim. He wore a cloak of coarse material with
breeches and had his fingers webbed. The weather was fine; he left the island
towards the evening. Illugi thought his journey was hopeless. Grettir had the
current with him and it was calm as he swam towards the fjord. He smote the
water bravely and reached Reykjanes after sunset. He went into the settlement
at Reykir, bathed in the night in a warm spring, and then entered the hall,
where it was very hot and a little smoky from the fire which had been burning
there all day. He was very tired and slept soundly, lying on right into the
day. When it was a little way on in the morning the servants rose, and the first
to enter the room were two women, the maid with the bondi's daughter. Grettir
was asleep, and his clothes had all fallen off on to the floor. They saw a man
lying there and recognised him. The maid said:
"As I wish for salvation, sister, here is Grettir the son of Asmund
come. He really is large about the upper part of his body, and is lying bare.
But he seems to me unusually small below. It is not at all in keeping with the
rest of him."
The bondi's daughter said: "How can you let your tongue run on so? You
are more than half a fool! Hold your tongue!"
"I really cannot be silent, my dear sister," said the maid;
"I would not have believed it if any one had told me."
Then she went up to him to look more closely, and kept running back to the
bondi's daughter and laughing. Grettir heard what she said, sprang up and
chased her down the room. When he had caught her he spoke a verse:
(VERSE MISSING IN MANUSCRIPT)
Soon afterwards Grettir went to the bondi Thorvald, told him his difficulty and
asked him to take him out to the island again, which he did, lending him a ship
and taking him over. Grettir thanked him for his courtesy. When it became known
that Grettir had swum a sea-mile, every one thought his courage extraordinary
both on sea and on land. The men of Skagafjord blamed Thorbjorn Angle much for
not having ridded Drangey of Grettir, and all wanted their shares back again.
That did not suit him and he asked them to have patience.
CHAPTER LXXVI
ADVENTURE OF HAERING IN DRANGEY
That summer a ship came to Gonguskardsos, on board of which was a man named
Haering. He was a young man and very active; he could climb any cliff. He went
to visit Thorbjorn Angle and stayed there into the autumn. He pressed Thorbjorn
much to take him to Drangey, that he might see whether the cliff was so high
that he could not get up there. Thorbjorn said it should not be for nothing if
he succeeded in getting up on to the island and either killing or wounding
Grettir; he made it appear attractive as a task for Haering to undertake.
One day they went to Drangey and he put the Easterner ashore in a certain
place, telling him not to let himself be seen if he got to the top. Then they
set up the ladder and began a conversation with Grettir's people. Thorbjorn
asked him whether he would not leave the island. He said there was nothing on
which he was so determined.
"You have played much with us," said Thorbjorn, "and we do
not seem likely to have our revenge, but you have not much fear for
yourself."
Thus they disputed for long, but came to no agreement.
We have now to tell of Haering. He climbed all about on the cliffs and got
to the top in a place which no other man ever reached before or since. On
reaching the top he saw the two brothers standing with their backs turned to
him. He hoped in a short time to win money and glory from both. They had no
inkling of his being there, and thought that nobody could get up except where
the ladders were. Grettir was occupied with Thorbjorn's men, and there was no
lack of derisive words on both sides. Then Illugi looked round and saw a man
coming towards them, already quite close. He said: "Here is a man coming
towards us with his axe in the air; he has a rather hostile appearance."
"You deal with him," said Grettir, "while I look after the
ladder." Illugi then advanced against the Easterner, who on seeing him
turned and ran about all over the island. Illugi chased him to the furthest end
of the island; on reaching the edge he leaped down and broke every bone in his
body; thus his life ended. The place where he perished was afterwards called
Haering's leap. Illugi returned and Grettir asked him how he had parted with
his man.
"He would not trust me to manage for him," he said. "He broke
his neck over the cliff. The bondis may pray for him as for a dead man."
When Angle heard that he told his men to shove off. "I have now been
twice to meet Grettir," he said. "I may come a third time, and if
then I return no wiser than I am now, it is likely that they may stay in
Drangey, so far as I am concerned. But methinks Grettir will not be there so
long in the future as he has been in the past."
They then returned home and this journey seemed even worse than the one
before. Grettir stayed in Drangey and saw no more of Thorbjorn that winter. Skapti
the Lawman died during the winter, whereby Grettir suffered a great loss, for
he had promised to press for a removal of his sentence when he had been twenty
years an outlaw, and the events just related were in the nineteenth year. In
the spring died Snorri the Godi, and much more happened during this winter
season which does not belong to our saga.
CHAPTER LXXVII
GRETTIR'S CASE BEFORE THE ALL-THING
That summer at the All-Thing Grettir's friends spoke much about his
outlawry, and some held that his term was fulfilled when he had completed any
portion of the twentieth year. This was disputed by the opposite party, who
declared that he had committed many acts deserving of outlawry since, and that,
therefore, his sentence ought to be all the longer. A new Lawman had been
appointed, Steinn the son of Thorgest, the son of Steinn the Far-traveller, the
son of Thorir Autumn-mist. The mother of Steinn the Lawman was Arnora, the
daughter of Thord the Yeller. He was a wise man, and was asked for his opinion.
He told them to make a search to find out whether this was the twentieth year
of his outlawry, and they did so. Then Thorir of Gard went to work to put every
possible difficulty in the way, and found out that Grettir had spent one year
of the time in Iceland, during which he must be held to have been free of his
outlawry. Consequently it had only lasted nineteen years.
The Lawman declared that no man could be outlawed for longer than twenty
years in all, even though he committed an outlaw's acts during that time. But
before that he would allow no man to be freed.
Thus the endeavour to remove his sentence broke down for the moment, but
there seemed a certainty of his being freed in the following summer. The men of
Skagafjord were little pleased at the prospect of Grettir being freed, and they
told Thorbjorn Angle that he must do one of the two, resign his holding in the
island or kill Grettir. He was in great straits, for he saw no way of killing
Grettir, and yet he wanted to keep the island. He tried everything he could
think of to get the better of Grettir by force or by fraud or in any other way
that he could.
CHAPTER LXXVIII
THORBJORN'S FOSTER-MOTHER
Thorbjorn Angle had a foster-mother named Thurid. She was very old and of
little use to mankind, but she had been very skilled in witchcraft and magic
when she was young and the people were heathen. Now she seemed to have lost it
all. Still, although the land was Christian, many sparks of heathendom
remained. It was not forbidden by the law of the land to sacrifice or perform
other heathen rites in private; only the one who performed them openly was
sentenced to the minor exile. Now it happened to many as it is said: The hand
turns to its wonted skill, and that which we have learned in youth is always
most familiar to us. So Thorbjorn Angle, baffled in all his plans, turned for
help to the quarter where it would have been least looked for most people,
namely, to his foster-mother, and asked her what she could do for him.
She replied, "Now it seems to me to have come to this, as the saying
is: Many go to the goat-house to get wool. What would I less than to think
myself above the other men of the country, and then to be as nothing when it
comes to the trial? I see not that it fares worse with me than with you, even
though I scarce rise from my bed. If you will have my counsel then I must have
my way in all that is done."
He consented, and said that she had long given him counsel for his good. The
"double month" of the summer was now approaching. One fine day the old
woman said to Angle: "The weather is now calm and bright; I will that you
go to Drangey and pick a quarrel with Grettir. I will go with you and learn
what caution is in his words. I shall have some surety when I see how far they
are prospering, and then I will speak over them such words as I please."
Angle said: "Let us not go to Drangey. It is always worse in my mind
when I leave that place than when I arrive."
The woman said: "I will not help you if you will not let me do as I
like."
"Far be that from me, my foster-mother. I have said that I will go
there a third time, that something may come of it for us."
"You may venture it," she said, "much labour will you have
before Grettir is laid in the earth; often your lot will be doubtful and hard
will it go with you before it is finished. And yet you are so bound that
somehow you must get yourself out of it."
Then Thorbjorn Angle had a ten-oared boat manned and went on board with
eleven men. The woman was with them and they rowed out to Drangey. When the
brothers saw them coming they came forward to the ladder and began once more to
talk about their case. Thorbjorn said he had come once more to hear their
answer whether Grettir would leave the place. He said he would treat the
destruction of his property and Grettir's stay there as a light thing, provided
they parted in peace. Grettir said he had no intention of coming to any terms
about his going away. "I have often told you," he said, "that
there is no use in talking to me about it. You may do whatever you please; I
mean to stay here and abide what happens."
Thorbjorn saw that his end would not be gained this time, and said: "I
knew very well with what men of Hel I had to do. It is most likely that some
days will pass before I come here again."
"It would not hurt me if you never came at all," said Grettir.
The woman was lying in the stern sheets covered up with clothes. Then she
began to stir and said:
"These men are brave and unfortunate; there is much difference between
you; you offer them good and they refuse everything. There are few more certain
tokens of evil than not to know how to accept the good. Now I say this of you,
Grettir, that you be deprived of health, of all good luck and fortune, of all
protection and counsel, ever the more the longer you live. I wish that your
days may be less happy in the future than they have been in the past."
When Grettir heard that he started violently and said: "What fiend is
that in the ship with them?"
Illugi said: "I think that must be the old woman, Thorbjorn's
foster-mother."
"Curse the hag!" he said. "I could have thought of nothing
worse! Nothing that was ever said startled me more than her words, and I know
that some evil will befall me from her and her spells. She shall have something
to remind her of her visit here."
Then he took up an enormous stone and threw it down into the boat. It fell
into the heap of clothes. Thorbjorn had not thought that any man could throw so
far. A loud scream was heard, for the stone had struck her thigh and broken it.
Illugi said: "I wish you had not done that."
"Do not blame me for it," said Grettir. "I fear it has been
just too little. One old woman would not have been too great a price for us
two."
"How will she pay for us? That will be a small sum for the pair of
us."
Thorbjorn then returned home; no greeting passed between them when he left.
He spoke to the old woman and said: "It has happened as I expected. Little
credit has the journey to the island brought you. You have been injured for the
rest of your life, and we have no more honour than we had before; we have to
endure unatoned one insult after another."
She answered: "This is the beginning of their destruction; I say that
from this time onwards they will go downwards. I care not whether I live or
not, if I do not have vengeance for the injury they have done me."
"You seem to be in high spirits, foster-mother," he said. Then
they arrived home. The woman lay in bed for nearly a month before her leg was
set and she was able to walk again. Men laughed much over the journey of
Thorbjorn and the old woman. Little luck had come from the meetings with
Grettir, first at the peace declaration at the Thing, next when Haering was
killed, and now the third time when the woman's thigh was broken, while nothing
had been done on their side. Thorbjorn Angle suffered much from their talk.
CHAPTER LXXIX
THE SPELL TAKES EFFECT
The autumn passed and but three weeks remained till the winter. The old
woman asked to be driven to the sea-shore. Thorbjorn asked what she was going
to do.
"A small thing only," she said, "yet maybe the signal of
greater things to come."
They did as she asked them. When they reached the shore she hobbled on by
the sea as if directed to a spot where lay a great stump of a tree as large as
a man could bear on his shoulder. She looked at it and bade them turn it over
before her; the other side looked as if it had been burned and smoothed. She
had a small flat surface cut on its smooth side; then she took a knife, cut
runes upon it, reddened them with her blood and muttered some spells over it.
After that she walked backwards against the sun round it, and spoke many potent
words. Then she made them push the tree into the sea, and said it should go to
Drangey and that Grettir should suffer hurt from it. Then she went back to
Vidvik. Thorbjorn said he did not know what would come of it. The woman said he
would know more clearly some day. The wind was towards the land up the fjord,
but the woman's stump drifted against the wind, and not more slowly than would
have been expected.
Grettir was sitting in Drangey with his companions very comfortably, as has
been told. On the day following that on which the old woman had cast her spells
upon the tree they went down from the hill to look for firewood. When they got
to the western side of the island they found a great stump stranded there.
"Here is a fine log for fuel," cried Illugi, "let us carry it
home." Grettir gave it a kick with his foot and said: "An ill tree
and ill sent. We must find other wood for the fire."
He pushed it out into the sea and told Illugi to beware of carrying it home,
for it was sent for their destruction. Then they returned to their hut and said
nothing about the tree to the thrall. The next day they found the tree again,
nearer to the ladder than on the day before. Grettir put it back into the sea
and said he would never carry it home. That night passed and dirty weather set
in with rain, so that they did not care to go out and told Glaum to fetch fuel.
He grumbled very much and declared it was cruel to make him plague himself to
death in every kind of weather. He descended the ladder and found there the
woman's log. He thought himself lucky, laboured home with it to the hut and
threw it down with a great noise which Grettir heard.
"Glaum has got something; I must go out and see what it is," he
said, and went out, taking his wood-cutting axe with him.
"Let your cutting up of it be no worse than my carrying of it
home!" said Glaum.
Grettir was irritated with the thrall; he used his axe with both hands and
did not notice what tree it was. Directly the axe touched the tree it turned
flat and glanced off into Grettir's right leg. It entered above his right knee
and pierced to the bone, making a severe wound. Grettir turned to the tree and
said: "He who meant me evil has prevailed; it will not end with this. This
is the very log which I twice rejected. Two disasters have you now brought
about, Glaum; first you let our fire go out, and now you have brought in this
tree of ill-fortune. A third mistake will be the death of you and of us
all."
Illugi then bound the wound. It bled little; Grettir slept well that night
and three days passed without its paining him. When they opened the bandages
the flesh had grown together and the wound was almost healed. Illugi said:
"I do not think that you will suffer very long with this wound."
"That would be well," said Grettir; "it has happened
strangely however it ends; but my mind tells me otherwise."
CHAPTER LXXX
THE SPELL CONTINUES TO WORK
One evening they all went to bed, and about midnight Grettir began to toss
about. Illugi asked him why he was so restless. Grettir said his leg was
hurting him and he thought there must be some change in its appearance. They
fetched a light, unbound the wound and found it swollen and blue as coal. It
had opened again and was much worse than at first. He had much pain after that
and could not keep quiet, nor would any sleep come to his eyes.
Grettir said: "We must be prepared for it. This illness of mine is not
for nothing; there is witchcraft in it. The old woman has meant to punish me
for the stone which I threw at her." Illugi said: "I told you that no
good would come of that old woman."
"It will be all the same in the end," said Grettir, and spoke a
verse:
"Often when men have threatened my life
I have known to defend it against the foe:
but now 'tis a woman has done me to death.
Truly the spells of the wicked are mighty."
"Now we must be on the watch; Thorbjorn Angle will not leave it to end
here. You, Glaum, must in future guard the ladder every day and pull it up in
the evening. Do this trustily, for much depends thereon. If you betray us your
end will be a short one."
Glaum promised most faithfully. The weather now became severe. A
north-easterly wind set in and it was very cold. Every evening Grettir asked if
the ladder was drawn in.
"Are we now to look for men?" said Glaum. "Is any man so
anxious to take your life that he will lose his own for it? This weather is
much worse than impossible. Your warlike mood seems to have left you utterly if
you think that everything is coming to kill you."
"You will always bear yourself worse than either of us," said
Grettir, "whatever happens. But now you must mind the ladder however
unwilling you may be."
They drove him out every morning, much to his disgust. The pain of the wound
increased, and the whole leg was swollen; the thigh began to fester both above
and below the wound, which spread all round, and Grettir thought he was likely
to die. Illugi sat with him night and day, paying no heed to anything else.
They were now in the second week of his illness.
CHAPTER LXXXI
THORBJORN AGAIN VISITS DRANGEY
Thorbjorn Angle was now at home in Vidvik, much put out at not having been
able to overcome Grettir. When about a week had passed from the day when the
old woman had bewitched the log, she came to speak with Thorbjorn and asked
whether he did not mean to visit Grettir. He said there was nothing about which
he was more determined.
"But do you wish to meet him, foster-mother?" he asked.
"I have no intention of meeting him," she said; "I have sent
him my greeting, which I expect he has received. But I advise you to set off at
once and go quickly to see him, otherwise it will not be your fate to overcome
him."
He replied: "I have made so many inglorious journeys there that I am
not going again. This weather is reason enough; it would not be possible,
however pressing it were."
"You are indeed without counsel if you see not through these wiles.
Now, I will advise you. First go and collect men; ride to your brother-in-law
Halldor in Hof and get help from him. Is it too wild a thing to suppose that I
may have to do with this breeze that is now playing?"
Thorbjorn thought it might be that the woman saw further than he supposed,
so he sent through the country for men. Answer came very quickly that none of
those who had given up their shares would do anything to help him. They said
that both the island and the Grettir affair were Thorbjorn's. Tungu-Steinn gave
him two men, Hjalti his brother three, Eirik in Guddal sent him one. Of his own
he had six. These twelve rode out from Vidvik to Hof, where Halldor invited
them to stay and asked their news. Thorbjorn told him everything fully. Halldor
asked who had done it all; he said his foster-mother had urged him much.
"That will lead to no good. She is a sorceress, and sorcery is now
forbidden."
"I cannot overlook everything," said Thorbjorn; "I am
determined that it shall now be brought to an end somehow. But how shall I go
to work to get on to the island?"
"It seems to me," said Halldor, "that you are relying upon
something, but I know not whether it is anything good. If you want to
accomplish anything go out to my friend Bjorn in Haganes in Fljot. He has a
good boat; ask him from me to lend it to you, and then you will be able to sail
on to Drangey. It seems to me that if you find Grettir well and hearty your
journey will have been in vain. One thing know for certain: do not slay him in
open fight, for there are enough men to avenge him. Do not slay Illugi if you
can help it. I fear that my counsel may not appear altogether Christian."
Halldor then gave him six men; one was named Kar, another Thorleif, the
third Brand. The names of the others are not mentioned.
These eighteen men then went to Fljot, reached Haganes, and gave Halldor's
message to Bjorn. He said it was his duty to do it for Halldor's sake, but that
he was under no obligation to Thorbjorn. He said it was an insane journey to
make, and tried hard to dissuade them. They answered that they could not turn
back, so they went down to the sea and launched the boat, which was ready with
all her gear in the boat-house. Then they made ready to sail. All those who
were standing on the shore thought it impossible to cross. They hoisted the
sail and the boat was soon under way, far out in the fjord. When they got right
out to sea the weather quieted and was no longer too heavy. In the evening as
it was getting dark they reached Drangey.
CHAPTER LXXXII
THE LAST BATTLE -- DEATH OF GRETTIR AND ILLUGI
It has now to be told how Grettir became so ill that he could not stand on
his feet. Illugi sat with him and Glaum had to hold watch. He still continued
to object, and said they might think their lives were going to fall out of
them, but there was no reason for it. He went out, but most unwillingly. When
he came to the ladder he said to himself that there was no need to draw it up.
He felt very sleepy, lay down and slept all day, and did not wake until
Thorbjorn reached the island. They saw then that the ladder was not drawn up.
Thorbjorn said: "The situation has changed from what it used to be; there
are no men moving about, and the ladder is in its place. It may be that more
will come of our journey than we expected at first. Now let us go to the hut
and not let our courage slacken. If they are well we may know for certain that
there will be need for each to do his very best."
They went up the ladder, looked round and saw close to the ascent a man
lying and snoring aloud. Thorbjorn recognised Glaum, went up to the rascal and
told him to wake up, striking his ear with the hilt of his sword and saying:
"Truly he is in a bad case whose life is entrusted to your keeping."
Glaum looked up and said: "They are going on as usual. Do you think my
freedom such a great thing while I am lying here in the cold?"
Angle said: "Have you lost your wits? Don't you see that your enemies
are upon you and about to kill you all?"
Glaum said nothing, but on recognising the men cried out as loud as he
could.
"Do one thing or the other," said Angle; "either be silent
this moment and tell me all about your household, or be killed."
Glaum was as silent as if he had been dipped in water. Thorbjorn said:
"Are the brothers in the hut? Why are they not about?"
"That would not be so easy," said Glaum, "for Grettir is sick
and nigh to death and Illugi is sitting with him."
Thorbjorn asked about his condition, and what had happened. Then Glaum told
him all about Grettir's wound.
Angle laughed and said: "True is the ancient saying that Old friends
are the last to break away, and also this, that It is ill to have a thrall for
your friend -- such a one as you, Glaum! You have shamefully betrayed your
liege lord, though there was little good in him."
Then the others cast reproaches at him for his villainy; they beat him
almost helpless and left him lying there. Then they went on to the hut and
knocked violently at the door.
Illugi said: "Greybelly (1) is knocking at the door, brother."
"He is knocking rather loud," said Grettir; "most
unmercifully." Then the door broke in pieces. Illugi rushed to his arms
and defended the door so that they could not get in. They assailed it long, but
could get nothing in but the points of their spears, all of which Illugi
severed from their shafts. Seeing that they could do nothing, they sprang on to
the roof and began to break it in. Then Grettir got on to his feet, seized a
spear and thrust it between the rafters. It struck Kar, Halldor's man from Hof,
and went right through him. Angle told them to go to work warily and be careful
of themselves. "We shall only overcome them," he said, "if we act
with caution."
Then they laid open the end of one of the timbers and bore upon it until it
broke. Grettir was unable to rise from his knees, but he seized the sword
Karsnaut at the moment when they all sprang in from the roof, and a mighty fray
began. Grettir struck with his sword at Vikar, a man of Hjalti the son of
Thord, reaching his left shoulder as he sprang from the roof. It passed across
his shoulder, out under his right arm, and cut him right in two. His body fell
in two parts on the top of Grettir and prevented him from recovering his sword
as quickly as he wished, so that Thorbjorn Angle was able to wound him severely
between the shoulders. Grettir said: "Bare is his back who has no
brother!"
Illugi threw his shield before Grettir and defended him so valiantly that
all men praised his prowess.
Grettir said to Angle: "Who showed you the way to the island?"
"Christ showed us the way," he said.
"I guess," said Grettir, "that it was the wicked old woman,
your foster-mother, who showed you; hers were the counsels that you relied
upon."
"It shall now be all the same to you," said Angle, "upon whom
I relied."
They returned to the attack; Illugi defended himself and Grettir
courageously, but Grettir was unfit for fighting, partly from his wounds,
partly from his illness. Angle then ordered them to bear Illugi down with their
shields, saying he had never met with his like amongst older men than he. They
did so, and pressed upon him with a wall of armour against which resistance was
impossible. They took him prisoner and kept him. He had wounded most of those
who were attacking him and killed three. Then they went for Grettir, who had
fallen forward on his face. There was no resistance in him for he was already
dead from his wounded leg; his thigh was all mortified up to the rectum. Many
more wounds they gave him, but little or no blood flowed.
When they thought he was quite dead Angle took hold of his sword, saying he
had borne it long enough, but Grettir's fingers were so tightly locked around
the hilt that he could not loosen them. Many tried before they gave it up,
eight of them in turn, but all failed. Angle then said: "Why should we
spare a forest-man? Lay his hand upon the log."
They did so, and he hewed off the hand at the wrist. Then the fingers
straightened and were loosed from the hilt. Angle took his sword in both hands
and hewed at Grettir's head. So mighty was the blow that the sword could not
hold against it, and a piece was broken out of the edge. When asked why he
spoilt a good weapon, he replied: "It will be more easily known if there
be any question."
They said this was unnecessary, as the man was dead before. "I will do
more," he said, and struck two or three blows at Grettir's neck before he
took off his head. Then he said:
"Now I know for certain that Grettir is dead; a great man of war have
we laid even with the earth. We will take his head with us, for I have no wish
to lose the money which was put upon it. There shall not be any doubt that it
was I who slew Grettir."
They said he might do as he pleased, but they felt much disgusted, and
thought his conduct contemptible.
Then Angle said to Illugi: "It is a great pity that a man so valiant as
you should have committed such a folly as to cast in your lot with this outlaw
and follow his evil ways, at last to die unatoned."
Illugi answered: "When the All-Thing is over next summer you shall know
who are outlawed. Neither you nor the woman, your foster-mother, shall judge
this case, for it is your spells and sorcery that have killed Grettir, though you
bore your iron weapons against him when he was at the door of death. Many a
base deed did you do over and above your witchcraft."
Angle said: "You speak bravely, but it shall not be so. I will show how
I value you by sparing your life if you will swear by your honour to take no
vengeance upon any person who has been with us on this occasion."
"I might have thought of it," he said, "if Grettir had been
able to defend himself or if you had killed him in honourable battle. But now
you need not hope that I will try to save my life by becoming a poltroon like
you. I tell you at once that if I live no man shall be more burdensome to you
than I. Long will it be before I forget how you have dealt with Grettir; far
sooner will I choose to die."
Then Thorbjorn consulted with his companions whether they should allow
Illugi to live. They said he should decide their doings himself, as he was the
leader of the expedition. Angle said he was not going to have a man threatening
his head who would not promise to hold faith. When Illugi knew that they
intended to slay him he laughed and said: "Now you have resolved upon that
which was nearest to my heart."
When the day broke they led him to the eastern side of the island and there
slew him. All praised his courage, and said there was no man of his years who
was like him. They buried both the brothers in the island, but took Grettir's
head with all weapons and clothes which had any value away with them. His good
sword Angle would not allow to come amongst the spoils for division, but bore
it long himself. They took Glaum with them, still complaining and resisting.
The weather had calmed down in the night, and in the morning they rowed to the
mainland. Angle sailed for the most convenient place, and sent the ship on to
Bjorn. When they came near to Osland, Glaum became so obstreperous that they
refused to carry him any further and slew him there where he was, crying as
loud as he could until he was killed. Angle went home to Vidvik and considered
that on this journey he had been successful. They laid Grettir's head in salt
and put it for the winter in the out-house called Grettisbur in Vidvik. Angle
was much blamed for this affair when men came to know that Grettir had been
overcome by sorcery. He remained quietly at home till after Yule. Then he went
to seek Thorir in Gard and told him of the slayings, adding that he considered
that he had a right to the money which had been put on Grettir's head.
Thorir said that he would not deny that he had brought about Grettir's
sentence. "I have often suffered wrong from him; but I would not to take
his life have become an evil-doer as you have done. I will not pay the money to
you, for you seem to me as one who will be doomed to death for magic and
witchcraft."
Angle said: "I think it is much more avarice and meanness on your part
than any scruples about the way in which Grettir was killed."
Thorir said there was an easy way of settling it between them; they need
only wait for the All-Thing and accept what seemed right to the Lawman. They
then parted with nothing but illfeeling between Thorir and Thorbjorn Angle.
ENDNOTES:
(1) The tame ram, see ch. lxxiv.
CHAPTER LXXXIII
THORBJORN VISITS GRETTIR'S MOTHER AT BJARG
The kinsmen of Grettir and Illugi were deeply grieved when they heard of
their death. They held that Angle had done a dastardly deed in slaying a man at
the point of death, and they also accused him of practising sorcery. They
applied to the most learned men, and Angle's case was ill-spoken of.
Four weeks after the beginning of summer he rode Westwards to Midfjord. When
Asdis heard of his being in the neighbourhood she gathered her men around her.
She had many friends, Gamli and Glum, Skeggi, called Short-hand, and Ospak, who
was mentioned before. So much beloved was she that the whole of Midfjord rose
to help her, even those who had once been Grettir's enemies. Chief among these
was Thorodd Drapustuf, who was joined by most of the Hrutafjord men.
Angle reached Bjarg with a following of twenty men, bringing Grettir's head
with him. All those who had promised their support had not yet come in. Angle's
party entered the room with the head and set it on the floor. The mistress of
the house was there and several others; no greeting passed between them. Angle
spoke a verse:
"Grettir's head I bring thee here.
Weep for the red-haired hero, lady.
On the floor it lies; 'twere rotten by this,
but I laid it in salt. Great glory is mine."
She sat silent while he spoke his verse; then she said:
"The swine would have fled like sheep from the fox
if Grettir had stood there hearty and strong.
Shame on the deeds that were done in the North!
Little the glory you gain from my lay."
Many said it was small wonder that she had brave sons, so brave was she
herself before the insults which she had received. Ospak was outside and was
talking with those of Angle's men who had not gone in. He asked about the fray,
and they all praised Illugi for the defence that he had made. They also told of
Grettir's firm grip on his sword after he was dead, and the men thought it
marvellous. Then a number of men were seen riding from the West; they were the
friends of Asdis with Gamli and Skeggi, who had come from Melar.
Angle had intended to have an execution against Illugi and to claim all his
property, but when all these men came up he saw that it would not do. Ospak and
Gamli were very forward in wanting to fight with Angle, but the wiser heads
told them to get the advice of their kinsmen Thorvald and other chiefs, and
said that the more men of knowledge occupied themselves with the affair the
worse it would be for Angle. Through their intervention Angle got away and took
with him Grettir's head, which he intended to produce at the All-Thing. He rode
home thinking that matters were going badly for him, for nearly all the chiefs
in the land were either relations or connections of Grettir and Illugi.
That summer Skeggi Short-hand married the daughter of Thorodd Drapustuf, who
then took part in the case on the side of Grettir's kinsmen.
CHAPTER LXXXIV
THORBJORN IS EXILED AT THE THING
Men now rode to the Thing. Angle's party was smaller than he had expected,
because the matter had come to be badly spoken of. Halldor asked whether they
were to take Grettir's head with them to the All-Thing. Angle said he meant to
take it.
"That is an ill-advised thing to do," said Halldor; "there
are quite enough men against you as it is, without your doing such a thing as
that to re-awaken their grief."
They were then on the road, and meant to ride South by Sand, so Angle let
him take the head and bury it in a sand-hill, which is now called Grettisthuf.
The Thing was very full. Angle brought forward his case, making the most of
his own deeds. He told them how he had killed the forest-man on whose head the
highest price had been laid, and he claimed the money. Thorir replied as
before. Then the Lawman was asked for his opinion. He said that he wished to
hear whether any counter-charge was made, by which Angle should forfeit the
outlaw money; if not, the money offered for Grettir's head must be paid. Then
Thorvald the son of Asgeir asked Short- hand to bring the case before the
court, and he declared a first summons against Thorbjorn Angle for witchcraft
and sorcery through which Grettir had met with his death, and a second for
having killed a man who was half dead, crimes which he said were punishable
with outlawry.
There was a great division of parties, but those who supported Thorbjorn
were few. It went very unexpectedly for him, for Thorvald and his son-in-law
Isleif held that to do a man to death by sorcery was a crime worthy of death.
Finally, by the counsel of wise men sentence was passed that Thorbjorn was to
leave Iceland that summer and not to return during the lifetime of any of the
men concerned in the case on the side of Illugi and Grettir. It was enacted as
a law that all sorcerers should be outlawed.
When Thorbjorn saw what his fate was going to be he got away from the Thing,
for Grettir's friends were making preparations to attack him. None of the money
that was set upon Grettir's head did he get; Steinn the Lawman would not allow
it because of his dishonourable conduct; nor was any bloodmoney paid for the
men who had fallen on his side in Drangey; they were set off against Illugi, an
arrangement, however, with which Illugi's kinsmen were not at all pleased.
Men rode home from the Thing, and all the feuds which had arisen on
Grettir's account were now at an end. Skeggi the son of Gamli, son-in-law of
Thorodd Drapustuf and sister's son of Grettir, went North to Skagafjord with
the assistance of Thorvald Asgeirsson and of his son-in-law Isleif, who
afterwards became bishop of Skalaholt. After obtaining the consent of the whole
community he took ship and went to Drangey, where he found the bodies of
Grettir and Illugi and brought them to Reykir in Reykjastrand and buried them
in the church. Testimony of Grettir lying there is in the fact that in the days
of the Sturlungs, when the church at Reykir was moved to another place,
Grettir's bones were dug up, and were found to be enormously big and strong.
Illugi was buried later on the north side of the church, and Grettir's head was
buried in the church at his home in Bjarg.
Asdis remained in Bjarg and was so beloved that no one molested her any more
than they did while Grettir was an outlaw. The property at Bjarg passed after
her death to Skeggi Short-hand, who became a great man. His son was Gamli, the
father of Skeggi of Skarfsstad and of Alfdis the mother of Odd the Monk, from
whom many are descended.
CHAPTER LXXXV
THORBJORN GOES TO NORWAY AND CONSTANTINOPLE
Thorbjorn Angle embarked at Gasar with as much of his own property as he was
able to get. His lands went to his brother Hjalti, including Drangey, which
Angle gave him. Hjalti became a great chief later on, but is not mentioned
again in our story.
Angle went to Norway and still made himself very important. He was supposed
to have done a great deed of valour in slaying Grettir, and many who did not
know how it really happened honoured him accordingly; but there were some to
whom Grettir's fame was known. He only told so much of the story as tended to
his own glory, but whatever was less creditable to him he omitted. In the
autumn his account reached Tunsberg and came to the ears of Thorsteinn Dromund,
who kept very quiet, for he had been told that Angle was a very doughty man and
valiant. He remembered the talk which he had had with Grettir in days long past
about his arms, and obtained news of Angle's movements. They were both in
Norway that winter, but Thorbjorn was in the North and Thorsteinn in Tunsberg,
so that they did not see each other. Angle knew, however, that Grettir had a
brother in Norway, and did not feel very secure in a strange country; so he
asked advice as to what he had better do. In those days many of the Norsemen
used to go to Mikligard (1) to take service. Thorbjorn thought it would suit
him very well to go there and earn wealth and glory instead of staying in the
northern parts where there were relations of Grettir. So he made ready to leave
Norway, embarked, and did not stop until he reached Constantinople, and
obtained service there.
ENDNOTES:
(1) Constantinople.
CHAPTER LXXXVI
GRETTIR'S DEATH AVENGED BY HIS BROTHER THORSTEINN DROMUND
Thorsteinn Dromund was a wealthy man and highly thought of. On hearing of
Angle's departure to Constantinople he handed over his property to his kinsmen
and followed him, dogging his movements as he went, without Angle knowing. He
reached Constantinople very soon after Angle, intending at all costs to kill
him. Neither knew of the other.
Both wanted to be received into the Varangian Guards, and their offer was
well received directly it was known that they were Norsemen. At that time
Michael Catalactus was king over Constantinople. Thorsteinn Dromund watched for
an opportunity of meeting Angle where he might recognise him, but failed amidst
the crowd, so he kept on the watch, caring little for his own well- being and
ever thinking how much he had lost.
The next thing that happened was that the Varangians were ordered on field
service for the defence of the country. The custom and the law were that before
they marched a review was held for the inspection of their weapons; this was done
on the present occasion. On the day appointed for the review all the Varangians
and all who were marching with them had to appear and show their arms.
Thorsteinn and Angle both presented themselves. Thorbjorn was the first to show
his weapons and he presented the sword Grettisnaut. As he showed it all
marvelled and declared that it was indeed a noble weapon, but said it was a bad
fault that a piece was out of the middle of the edge, and they asked how that
had come about. Angle said that was a tale worth telling.
"The first thing I must tell you," he said, "is that out in
Iceland I slew a hero named Grettir the Strong. He was a tremendous warrior and
so valorous that no one could succeed in killing him until I came. But as I was
destined to be his slayer, I overcame him, although he was many times stronger
than I am. I cut off his head with this sword and broke a piece out of the
edge."
Those who stood by said he must have had a hard skull, and they showed the
sword round. From this Thorsteinn came to know which was Angle, and asked to be
shown the sword with the others. Angle willingly showed it to him, for they
were all praising his strength and courage, and he, having no notion of its
being Thorsteinn or any relation of Grettir, thought he would do likewise.
Dromund took the sword, at once raised it aloft and struck a blow at Angle. It
came into his head with such force that it penetrated to his jaw and Thorbjorn
fell dead to the ground. Thereupon all the men became silent. The officer of
the place put Thorsteinn under arrest and asked him why he had committed such a
breach of discipline in the sanctity of the Assembly. Thorsteinn said he was a
brother of Grettir the Strong and that he had never been able to obtain his
vengeance till that moment. Then many of them stood up for him and said there
was much excuse for a man who had come such a long way to avenge his brother.
The elders of the town thought that this might be true, but as there was no one
present to bear out his word they fell back upon their own law, which declared
that any man who slew another should lose nothing else than his life.
Judgment was quickly passed upon Thorsteinn, and it was rather hard. He was
to sit in a dark chamber in a dungeon and there await his death unless some one
came to pay a ransom for him. When he reached the dungeon he found a man who
had been there a long time and was all but dead from misery. It was both foul
and cold. Thorsteinn asked him: "How do you find your life?"
"Most evil," he replied; "no one will help me, for I have no
kinsmen to pay a ransom."
"There are many ways out of a difficulty," said Thorsteinn,
"let us be happy and do something to cheer ourselves."
The man said he had no joy in anything.
"We will try it," said Thorsteinn.
Then he began to sing songs. He was such a singer that it would be hard to
find his like, and he spared nothing. The dungeon was close to the public road
and Thorsteinn sang so loud that it resounded from the walls; the man who
before was half dead had much joy therefrom. In this way he sang every evening.
CHAPTER LXXXVII
THE LADY SPES
There was a very distinguished lady in that town, the owner of a large
establishment, very rich and highly born. Her name was Spes. Her husband's name
was Sigurd; he too was wealthy, but of lower birth than she was. She had been
married to him for his money. There was not much love between them, and the
marriage was thought an unhappy one. She was very proud, and had much dignity.
One evening when Thorsteinn was diverting himself she happened to pass along
the street near the dungeon and heard singing so sweet that she declared she
had never heard the like. She was walking with several retainers, and told them
to go in and find out who it was that had such a magnificent voice. They called
out and asked who was there in such close confinement. Thorsteinn told his
name. Spes said:
"Are you as good at other things as you are at singing?"
He said there was not much in that.
"What have you done," she asked, "that they should torture
you here to death?"
He said he had killed a man and avenged his brother; "but I have no
witness to prove it," he said; "so I have been put here unless some
one comes to release me, of which there seems little hope, since I have no
relations here."
"A great loss would it be if you were killed," she said. "Was
your brother then a man of such renown, he whom you avenged?"
Thorsteinn said he was half as good a man again as himself.
She asked what token there was of that. Then Thorsteinn spoke this verse:
"Goddess of rings! No eight could meet him,
or gain the sword from his vanquished hand.
Brave was Grettir; his foemen doughty
severed the hand of the ruler of ships."
Those who understood the song declared that it told of great nobility. When
she heard that she asked:
"Will you receive your life at my hands if the choice is offered
you?"
"Indeed I will," he said, "if this companion of mine sitting
here is released along with me. If not, we must both remain sitting here
together."
She answered: "I think you are more worth paying for than he is."
"However that may be," he said, "either we both of us come
out from here together or neither of us comes out."
So she went to the Varangians' quarters and asked for the release of
Thorsteinn, offering money. They agreed. With her interest and her wealth she
brought it about that both of them were released. Directly Thorsteinn came out
of the dungeon he went to pay his respects to the lady Spes. She welcomed him
and kept him there secretly. From time to time he went campaigning with the
Varangians, and was distinguished for his courage in all their engagements.
CHAPTER LXXXVIII
ADVENTURES OF THORSTEINN AND SPES
At that time Harald the son of Sigurd (1) was in Constantinople, and Thorsteinn
became friendly with him. Thorsteinn was now a very great personage, for Spes
kept him well supplied with money, and they became very much attached to one
another. She was a great admirer of his skill. Her expenses were very great
because she tried to keep up many friends. Her husband noticed a great change
in her character and her behaviour, and especially that she had become very
extravagant. Treasures of gold and other property which were in her keeping
disappeared. One day her husband Sigurd spoke with her and said that he was
much surprised at her conduct. "You pay no attention to our affairs,"
he said, "and squander money in many ways. You seem as if you were in a
dream, and never wish to be where I am. I am certain that something is going on."
She replied: "I told you as I told my kinsmen when we married that I
meant to be my own mistress in all matters which concern myself; that is why I
do not spare your money. Or is there anything more than this that you wish to
speak about with me? Do you accuse me of anything shameful?"
He said : "I am not without my suspicions that you are keeping some man
whom you prefer to me."
"I do not know," she said, "that there would be very much in
that; and yet of a surety there is no truth in what you say. I will not speak
with you alone if you bring such improper accusations against me."
He dropped the subject for the time. She and Thorsteinn continued to carry
on as before, and were not very heedful of the talk of evil-minded people; they
relied upon her wits and her popularity. They were often sitting together and
diverting themselves.
One evening when they were sitting in an upper room in which her treasures
were kept she asked Thorsteinn to sing something, and thinking that her husband
was as usual sitting at drink she fastened the door. When he had sung for a
time there was a banging at the door, and some one called to them to open it.
It was her husband with a number of his followers. The lady had opened a large
chest to show Thorsteinn the treasures. When she knew who was outside she
refused to open the door, and said to Thorsteinn: "Quickly! Jump into the
chest and keep very quiet."
He did so. She locked the chest and sat upon it. Her husband then entered,
having forced his way in. She said:
"What are you coming here for with all this uproar? Are there robbers
after you?"
He said: "Now it is well that you yourself give proof of what you are.
Where is the man who was letting his voice run on so grandly? No doubt you
think his voice is better than mine."
"No man is a fool if he keeps silence," she said; "that
applies to you. You think yourself very cunning, and would like to fasten your
lies on to me, as in this case. Well, if you have spoken the truth, find the
man. He will not escape through the walls or the roof."
He searched all through the room and found nothing.
"Why don't you take him," she said, "if you are so
certain?"
He was silent and knew not how he could have been deceived. He asked his men
whether they had not heard what he heard, but when they saw that the lady was
displeased there was nothing to be got out of them; they said that one was
often mistaken about sounds. He then went away, not doubting that he knew the
truth, though he could not find the man. After that he ceased for some time to
pry into his wife's concerns.
On another occasion, much later, Thorsteinn and Spes were sitting in a
tiring-room where dresses were kept which belonged to them, both made up and in
the piece. She showed many of the cloths to Thorsteinn and spread them out.
When they were least expecting it her husband came up with a troop of men and
broke into the room. While they were forcing their way in she covered
Thorsteinn up with a bundle of clothes and leaned against the heap when they
entered.
"Do you again deny," he said, "that there was a man here with
you? There are those present here now who saw you both."
She told him not to be so violent. "You will not fail to catch him
now," she said. "Only leave me in peace and do not push me
about."
They searched the room, but finding nothing had to give it up.
"It is always good to have better proofs than people suppose. It was
only to be expected that you would not find what was not there. Now, my
husband, will you admit your folly and free me from this slanderous
accusation?"
"By no means will I free you," he said, "for I know that what
I have accused you of is true, and it will cost you an effort to free yourself
of the charge."
She said she was quite ready to do that, and there. with they parted.
After this Thorsteinn remained entirely with the Varangians. Men say that he
acted by the advice of Harald the son of Sigurd, and it is thought that they
would not have got out of it as they did if they had not made use of him and
his wits.
After a time Sigurd gave out that he was about to go abroad on some
business. His wife did not try to dissuade him. When he was gone Thorsteinn
came to Spes and they were always together. Her house was built on the very
edge of the sea and there were some of the rooms under which the sea flowed.
Here it was that Spes and Thorsteinn always sat. There was a small trap-door
in the floor, known to no one but these two, and it was kept open in case of
its being wanted in a hurry.
Sigurd, it must be told, did not go away, but concealed himself so as to be
able to watch his wife's doings. One evening when they were sitting
unconcernedly in the room over the sea and enjoying themselves, in came her
husband with a party of men, taking them by surprise. He had taken some of the
men to the window of the room that they might see whether it was not as he had
said. They all said that he had spoken truly, and that it must have been so too
on the former occasions. Then they rushed into the room.
On hearing the noise Spes said to Thorsteinn: "You must go down here
whatever it costs. Give me some sign that you have got away from the
house."
He promised that he would, and descended through the floor. The lady closed
the trap-door with her foot, and it fell back into its place so that no one
could see any mark of the floor having been touched. Sigurd entered the room
with his men, searched, and of course found nothing. The room was uninhabited
and there was no furniture in it, but only the bare floor and a bed, on which
the lady was sitting and twirling her fingers. She paid little attention to
them and seemed as if their business did not concern her. Sigurd thought it
altogether ridiculous and asked his followers if they had not seen the man.
They declared that they had seen him most assuredly.
The lady said: "Now we may say as the proverb has it: A11 good things
are in threes. This is your case, Sigurd. Three times you have disturbed me, if
I remember rightly; and now are you any the wiser than you were in the
beginning?"
"This time I am not alone to tell the story," he said. "For
all that you will have to clear yourself, for on no terms will I allow your
shameful deeds to go unpunished."
"It seems," she said, "that you require the very thing which
I would myself propose. It will please me well to show the falsehood of this
accusation, which has been so thoroughly aired that I shall be disgraced if I
cannot refute it."
"At the same time," he said, "you will have to deny that you
have expended my money and my property."
She replied: "At the time when I clear myself I will refute all the
matters which you brought against me, and you may consider how it will all end.
I mean to go at once, to-morrow morning, before the bishop that he may grant me
full compurgation from this charge."
Her husband was satisfied with this and went away with his men.
In the meantime Thorsteinn had swum away from the house and landed at a
convenient place, where he got a firebrand and held it aloft so that it could
be seen from the lady's house. She stayed long outside in the evening and the
night, for she was anxious to know whether Thorsteinn had reached the land.
When she saw the light she knew that he had landed, for that was the signal
which they had agreed upon.
The next morning Spes proposed to her husband that they should speak with
the bishop on their matter. This he was quite ready to do, so they went before
the bishop and Sigurd repeated his accusation. The bishop asked whether she had
ever been accused of misbehaviour before, but nobody had heard of such a thing.
Then he asked upon what evidence this charge was brought against her, and
Sigurd produced the men who had seen her sitting in a room with the door locked
and a man with her. Her husband said that this was ground enough for supposing
that the man meant to seduce her.
The bishop said that she might very well purge herself from this accusation
if she so desired. She replied that she desired it very much. "I
hope," she said, "that I shall have many women to swear for me on
this charge."
The form of the oath which she was to swear was then communicated to her and
the day for the compurgation fixed. She returned home and was quite happy. She
and Thorsteinn met and laid their plans.
ENDNOTES:
(1) The same Harald who, as King of Norway, would later challenge King Harald I
for the throne of England. He lost at the Battle of Stamford Bridge -- three
weeks before Hastings (A.D. 1066).
CHAPTER LXXXIX
THE ORDEAL
The day now arrived when Spes was to make oath. She invited all her friends and
relations, and appeared in the finest clothes that she possessed, with many a
fine lady in her train. It was raining heavily and the roads were flooded; on
the way to the church there was a swamp to be passed. When Spes came with her
company to the swamp there was a great crowd on the high road, and a multitude
of poor people asking for alms, for all who knew her thought it a duty to give
her a greeting and wish her well because of the kindnesses which they had often
received from her. Amongst these poor people there was a beggar very large of
stature and with a long beard. The women halted at the swamp; being people of
high rank they did not like to cross the dirty slough. The big beggar, seeing
that Spes was better dressed than the other ladies, said to her: "Good
lady, have the condescension to allow me to carry you over the swamp. It is the
duty of us gaberlunzies to serve you in whatever way we can."
"How can you carry me," she said, "when you can scarcely
carry yourself?"
"Nevertheless, it would be a great condescension. I cannot offer you
more than I have, and you will prosper the better in other things for having
had no pride with a poor man."
"Know then for a surety," she said, "that if you carry me not
properly the skin shall be flayed from your back."
"Gladly will I venture upon that," he said, and waded out into the
stream. She pretended to dislike very much being carried by him; nevertheless,
she got upon his back. He staggered along very slowly, using two crutches, and
when they reached the middle he was reeling in every direction. She told him to
pull himself together. "If you drop me here," she said, "it
shall be the worst journey that you ever made."
The poor wretch gathered up all his strength and still went on. By dint of a
valiant effort he had all but reached the shore when he struck his foot against
something and fell forwards, projecting her on to the bank while he himself
fell into the mire up to his armpits. There as he lay he put out his hands, not
on her clothes, but on her legs. She sprang up cursing and said she always
suffered ill from low vagabonds. "It would only be right that you should
have a good beating," she said, "were I not ashamed to beat such a
miserable creature as you are."
He said: "Unequal is the lot of man. I thought to earn some benefit and
to receive alms from you, and you only give me abuse and insult without any
reward." And he pretended to be very much disgusted. Many felt pity for
him, but she said he was a very cunning rascal. When they all began to beg for
him she took out her purse, wherein was many a golden penny. She shook out the
money, saying: "Take that, fellow! It would not be right that you should
go unpaid for all my scoldings. You are now paid for what you have done."
He gathered up the money and thanked her for her liberality. Spes then went
to the church, which was full of people. Sigurd proceeded with energy and told
her to clear herself of the charge which he had brought against her.
"I pay no heed to your accusation," she said; "but I want to
know what man it was whom you pretend to have seen in the room with me, because
there is always some proper man near me; there is nothing to be ashamed of in
that. But this I will swear, that to no man have I given money and that by no
man has my body been defiled excepting by my husband and by that beggar, who
put his muddy hands upon my leg to-day when I was carried over the ditch."
Many then were satisfied and declared that her oath was perfectly good and
that she was in no way disgraced by a man having touched her unwittingly. She
said she had to tell the story just as it happened, and then she swore the oath
in the words appointed for her. Many said that she would be observing the
saying that: Nothing should be omitted from an oath. But she replied that wise
men would hold that there was no cause for suspicion. Then her relations began
to talk with her and said that it was a great insult to a woman of high birth
that such lies should be told about her and go unpunished, for they said it was
an offence punishable with death if a woman were proved to have been unfaithful
to her husband. So Spes asked the bishop to divorce her from Sigurd, saying
that she would not endure the lies which he had told. Her kinsmen supported
her, and with their help her request was granted. Sigurd got little of the
property and had to leave the country. So it happened as usual that the weaker
had to bow, nor could he accomplish anything although the right was on his
side. Spes took all the money and was held in high esteem, but when men came to
consider her oath they thought it was not altogether above suspicion, and they
concluded that very skilful men had composed the Latin formula for her. They
ferreted out that the beggar who carried her was Thorsteinn Dromund. But Sigurd
got no redress.
CHAPTER XC
THORSTEINN AND SPES RETURN TO NORWAY
While the affair was being talked about Thorsteinn Dromund remained with the
Varangians, where he was held in such high estimation that his prowess was
considered to be beyond that of nearly every man who had come to them.
Especially Harald the son of Sigurd did him honour, and claimed kinship with
him; it was supposed to have been by his advice that Thorsteinn had acted.
Soon after Sigurd was driven from the country Thorsteinn proposed marriage
to Spes; she was quite agreeable, but referred it to her kinsmen. There were
family meetings and all agreed that she herself ought to decide. Matters were
settled between them; their union was most prosperous and they had plenty of
money. Thorsteinn was considered lucky to have got out of his difficulties in
such a way. After they had lived together for two years in Constantinople,
Thorsteinn told her that he would like to visit his property once more in
Norway. She said he should do as he pleased, and he then sold his property so
as to have some ready money. They left the country with a good company of
followers and sailed all the way to Norway. Thorsteinn's kinsmen welcomed them
both, and soon saw that Spes was both generous and noble; accordingly she
quickly became very popular. They had three children, and remained on their
property very well contented with their condition.
The king of Norway was at that time Magnus the Good. Thorsteinn soon went to
meet him, and was well received because of the fame which he had earned through
having avenged Grettir the Strong. Scarcely an example was known of a man from
Iceland having been avenged in Constantinople, excepting Grettir the son of
Asmund. It is said that Thorsteinn entered his bodyguard. Thorsteinn remained
nine years in Norway, both he and his wife being in high honour. After that
King Harald the son of Sigurd returned from Constantinople, and King Magnus
gave him the half of Norway. Both kings were together in Norway for a time.
After Magnus's death some who had been his friends were less contented, for he
was beloved of all, but Harald was not easy to get on with, since he was hard
and severe. Thorsteinn Dromund then began to grow old, but was still very
vigorous. Sixteen winters had now passed since the death of Grettir.
CHAPTER XCI
ABSOLUTION IN ROME
There were many who urged Thorsteinn to visit King Harald and become his
man, but he would not. Spes said to him: "I would not, Thorsteinn, that
you go to Harald, for a larger debt remains unpaid to another King, whereto we
must now turn our thoughts. Our youth is now passed; we are both becoming old,
and we have lived more after our desires than after Christian doctrine or
regard for righteousness. Now I know that neither kinsmen nor wealth may pay
this debt if we pay it not ourselves. I would therefore that we now change our
way of life and leave the country to betake ourselves to Pafagard.(1) I have
hope that so I shall be absolved from my sin."
Thorsteinn answered: "The matter of which you speak is as well known to
me as it is to you. It is right that you should rule now, and most seemly,
since you allowed me to rule when our matter was much less hopeful. And so
shall it be now in all that you say."
This resolve of theirs took men by surprise. Thorsteinn was then two years
past of sixty-five, but still vigorous in all that he undertook. He summoned
all his kinsmen and connections to him and told them his plans. The wiser men
approved of his resolve, while holding his departure a great misfortune for
themselves. Thorsteinn said there was no certainty of his return. He said:
"I wish now to thank you all for the care of my goods which you took
while I was absent. Now I ask you to take over my children along with my
property, and to bring them up in your own ways; for I am now come to such an
age that even if I live there is much doubt about whether I shall return.
Manage all that I leave behind as if I should never return to Norway."
The men answered that matters would be more easily managed if his wife
remained to look after them.
She answered: "I left my own country and came from Mikligard with
Thorsteinn, I bade farewell to my kinsmen and my possessions, because I wished
that one fate should befall us both. And now it has seemed pleasant to me here,
but no desire have I to remain in Norway or in these Northern lands after he
has departed. There has always been goodwill between us and no dissension. Now
we must both depart together; for we ourselves know best about many things
which have happened since we first met."
When they had thus dealt with their own condition, Tborsteinn appointed
certain impartial men to divide his property in two parts. Tborsteinn's kinsmen
took over the half which was to go to the children, and brought them up with
their father's relations. They became in time men of the utmost valour, and a
large posterity in the Vik is sprung from them. Thorsteinn and Spes divided
their share, giving some to the church for the good of their souls and keeping
some for themselves. So they set off for Rome, bearing the good wishes of many
with them.
ENDNOTES:
(1) Rome.
CHAPTER XCII
THE END OF THORSTEINN AND SPES
They travelled then the whole way to Rome, and appeared before him who was appointed
to hear confessions. They related truly all that had happened, all the cunning
tricks wherewith they had achieved their union. They submitted with humility to
the penances laid upon them, and by reason of their having voluntarily turned
their hearts to desire absolution from their sins, without any pressure from
the elders of the church, their penance was lightened so far as it was
possible, and they were gently admonished to arrange their lives with wisdom
for the well-being of their souls, and, after receiving absolution in full, to
live henceforward in purity. They were declared to have acted wisely and well.
Then the lady Spes said: "Now, I think it has gone well; and now we
have not suffered only misfortune together. It may be that foolish men will
follow the example of our former lives. Let us now end in such way that we may
be an example to the good. We will come to an agreement with some men skilled
in building to erect for each of us a stone retreat, thus may we atone for all
the offences which we have committed against God."
So Thorsteinn advanced money to stone-masons and such other persons as might
be needed, that they might not be without the means of subsistence. When these
works were completed and all matters were settled, a fitting time was chosen
for them to part company with each other, each to live alone, in order more
surely to partake of the eternal life in another world. They remained each in
their own retreat, living as long as it pleased God to spare them, and thus
ending their lives.
Most men consider Thorsteinn Dromund and Spes to have been most fortunate in
escaping from the difficulties which they had fallen into. None of their
children or posterity are mentioned as having come to Iceland.
CHAPTER XCIII
THE TESTIMONY OF STURLA THE LAWMAN
Sturla the Lawman has declared that no outlaw was ever so distinguished as
Grettir the Strong. For this he assigns three reasons. First, that he was the
cleverest, inasmuch as he was the longest time an outlaw of any man without
ever being captured, so long as he was sound in health. Secondly, that he was
the strongest man in the land of his age, and better able than any other to
deal with spectres and goblins. Thirdly, that his death was avenged in
Constantinople, a thing which had never happened to any other Icelander.
Further, he says that Thorsteinn Dromund was a man who had great luck in the
latter part of his life.
Here endeth the story of Grettir the son of Asmund.